Selected quad for the lemma: doctrine_n

Word A Word B Word C Word D Occurrence Frequency Band MI MI Band Prominent
doctrine_n false_a teach_v teacher_n 2,399 5 9.2607 5 false
View all documents for the selected quad

Text snippets containing the quad

ID Title Author Corrected Date of Publication (TCP Date of Publication) STC Words Pages
A66580 Infidelity vnmasked, or, The confutation of a booke published by Mr. William Chillingworth vnder this title, The religion of Protestants, a safe way to saluation [i.e. salvation] Knott, Edward, 1582-1656. 1652 (1652) Wing W2929; ESTC R304 877,503 994

There are 35 snippets containing the selected quad. | View original text

so_o all_o come_v to_o be_v uncertain_a unless_o we_o admit_v some_o infallible_a live_a guide_n 78._o but_o here_o i_o must_v reflect_v how_o apt_a you_o be_v in_o every_o occasion_n to_o write_v contradictorye_n you_o say_v of_o the_o place_n of_o scripture_n whereby_o we_o prove_v the_o in_o fallibility_n of_o the_o church_n that_o they_o be_v as_o subject_a to_o corruption_n as_o any_o other_o and_o more_o likly_a to_o have_v be_v corrupt_v if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a then_o any_o other_o a●d_v make_v to_o speak_v as_o they_o do_v for_o the_o advantage_n of_o those_o man_n who_o ambition_n it_o have_v be_v a_o long_a time_n to_o bring_v all_o under_o their_o authority_n you_o say_v that_o those_o place_n be_v more_o likly_a to_o have_v be_v corrupt_v if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a which_o signifyes_n that_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a and_o yet_o a_o few_o line_n after_o you_o affirm_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a and_o not_o altogether_o improbable_a that_o we_o have_v do_v it_o be_v the_o same_o thing_n not_o possible_a and_o possible_a or_o not_o possible_a and_o yet_o not_o improbable_a beside_o you_o say_v it_o be_v more_o lik_o those_o place_n which_o we_o allege_v for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n have_v be_v corrupt_v if_o it_o have_v be_v possible_a than_o any_o other_o and_o make_v to_o speak_v as_o they_o do_v for_o our_o advantage_n wherein_o you_o confess_v that_o actual_o some_o place_n of_o scripture_n speak_v for_o our_o advantage_n and_o then_o who_o be_v you_o to_o control_v god_n word_n and_o speak_v against_o those_o for_o who_o advantage_n it_o speak_v morover_n you_o say_v no_o proof_n can_v be_v pretend_v for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n but_o incorrupted_a place_n of_o scripture_n where_o you_o signify_v that_o nothing_o can_v be_v prove_v unless_o we_o know_v certain_o what_o place_n be_v incorrupt_v now_o i_o ask_v whether_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o we_o to_o corrupt_v those_o place_n which_o we_o bring_v to_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n or_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a if_o it_o be_v not_o possible_a than_o you_o wrong_v we_o in_o say_v that_o it_o be_v both_o possible_a and_o not_o altogether_o improbable_a that_o we_o have_v do_v it_o if_o it_o be_v possible_a then_o as_o i_o say_v what_o certainty_n have_v you_o that_o we_o have_v not_o do_v it_o see_v you_o say_v it_o be_v both_o possible_a and_o not_o improbable_a that_o we_o have_v do_v so_o or_o what_o certainty_n can_v you_o have_v that_o other_o have_v not_o do_v the_o like_a in_o other_o text_n for_o defence_n of_o their_o several_a doctrine_n 79._o last_o you_o still_o go_v upon_o a_o false_a ground_n that_o we_o can_v prove_v the_o church_n otherwise_o then_o by_o scripture_n whereas_o we_o must_v first_o prove_v scripture_n by_o the_o church_n 80._o 8._o how_o uncertain_a your_o kind_n of_o tradition_n be_v appear_v by_o your_o own_o word_n which_o be_v such_o as_o no_o enemy_n of_o christian_a religion_n can_v have_v utter_v more_o to_o the_o prejudice_n thereof_o than_o you_o do_v pag_n 90._o n._n 101._o where_o in_o the_o person_n of_o a_o member_n of_o the_o protestant_a church_n of_o england_n you_o speak_v to_o catholics_n in_o this_o manner_n you_o have_v wrong_v so_o exceed_o his_o christ_n miracle_n and_o his_o doctrine_n by_o forge_v so_o evident_o so_o many_o false_a miracle_n for_o the_o confirmation_n of_o your_o new_a doctrine_n which_o may_v give_v we_o just_a occasion_n have_v we_o no_o other_o assurance_n of_o they_o but_o your_o authority_n to_o suspect_v the_o true_a one_o what_o authority_n have_v you_o but_o that_o of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o such_o as_o agree_v with_o she_o who_o with_o forge_v so_o many_o false_a story_n and_o false_a author_n have_v take_v a_o fair_a way_n to_o make_v the_o faith_n of_o all_o story_n questionable_a if_o we_o have_v no_o other_o ground_n for_o our_o belief_n of_o they_o but_o your_o authority_n who_o have_v bring_v in_o doctrine_n plain_o and_o direct_o contrary_a to_o that_o which_o you_o confess_v to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o christ_n o_o portentous_a untruth_n and_o which_o for_o the_o most_o part_n make_v either_o for_o the_o honour_n or_o profit_n of_o the_o teacher_n of_o they_o which_o if_o there_o be_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o christian_a and_o the_o roman_a church_n will_v be_v very_o apt_a to_o make_v suspt●ious_a man_n believe_v that_o christian_a religion_n be_v a_o humane_a invention_n teach_v by_o some_o cunning_a impostor_n only_o to_o make_v themselves_o rich_a and_o powerful_a i_o pray_v you_o what_o good_a christian_n be_v there_o before_o luther_n except_o roman_a catholic_n and_o such_o as_o agree_v with_o they_o and_o therefore_o what_o difference_n can_v you_o put_v between_o good_a christian_n and_o roman_a catholic_n who_o make_v a_o profession_n of_o corrupt_v all_o sort_n of_o author_n a_o ready_a course_n to_o make_v it_o just_o questionable_a whether_o any_o remay_n ne_o uncorrupted_a for_o if_o you_o take_v this_o authority_n upon_o you_o upon_o the_o six_o age_n last_o pass_v how_o shall_v we_o know_v that_o the_o church_n of_o that_o time_n do_v not_o usurp_v the_o same_o authority_n upon_o the_o author_n of_o the_o six_o last_o age_n before_o they_o and_o so_o upward_o till_o we_o come_v to_o chrict_a himself_o who_o question_a doctrine_n none_o of_o they_o come_v from_o the_o fountain_n of_o apostolic_a tradition_n but_o have_v insinuate_v themselves_o into_o the_o stream_n by_o little_a and_o little_a some_o in_o one_o age_n and_o some_o in_o another_o some_o more_o ancient_o some_o more_o late_o and_o some_o yet_o be_v embryos_n yet_o hatch_n and_o in_o the_o shell_n thus_o you_o and_o then_o conclude_v see_v therefore_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v a_o sufficient_a foundation_n for_o our_o belief_n in_o christ_n that_o it_o be_v in_o sundry_a regard_v a_o dangerous_a temptation_n against_o it_o why_o shall_v i_o not_o much_o rather_o conclude_v see_v we_o receive_v not_o the_o knowledge_n of_o christ_n and_o scripture_n from_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n neither_o from_o she_o must_v we_o take_v his_o doctrine_n or_o the_o interpretation_n of_o scripture_n 81._o now_o let_v the_o reader_n consider_v 1._o if_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o all_o those_o church_n which_o agree_v with_o she_o before_o luther_n that_o be_v all_o true_a church_n of_o christ_n be_v such_o a_o thing_n as_o he_o describe_v what_o can_v they_o contribute_v to_o make_v up_o any_o part_n of_o his_o universal_a tradition_n yea_o she_o must_v needs_o make_v it_o suspect_v for_o false_a fallacious_a fraudulent_a and_o then_o what_o tradition_n will_v remain_v creditable_a or_o even_o considerable_a the_o greek_a church_n agree_v and_o at_o this_o day_n agree_v with_o catholic_n against_o protestant_n as_o be_v manifest_a and_o confess_v by_o learned_a protestant_n for_o which_o cause_n they_o do_v direct_o refuse_v to_o join_v with_o luther_n and_o his_o associate_n the_o muscovite_n armenian_n georgian_n aethiopian_n or_o abyssine_n either_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o eutyches_n which_o even_o protestant_n detest_v as_o a_o damnable_a heresy_n or_o use_v circumcision_n or_o for_o the_o rest_n agree_v with_o the_o greek_a and_o roman_a church_n and_o they_o can_v contribute_v little_a to_o your_o tradition_n i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o peruse_v charity_n maintain_v c_o 5._o from_o n._n 48._o to_o 54._o be_v he_o will_v find_v clear_o demonstrate_v what_o i_o have_v now_o say_v of_o the_o greek_a and_o other_o church_n since_o than_o you_o blast_v the_o credit_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o such_o as_o agree_v with_o she_o against_o protestant_n there_o will_v remain_v no_o tradition_n at_o all_o 82._o 2._o you_o say_v that_o we_o by_o forge_v miracle_n may_v give_v just_a occasion_n have_v you_o no_o assurance_n of_o they_o but_o our_o authority_n to_o suspect_v the_o true_a one_o of_o christ_n and_o by_o forge_v so_o many_o false_a story_n and_o false_a author_n have_v take_v a_o fair_a way_n to_o make_v the_o faith_n of_o all_o story_n questionable_a if_o you_o have_v no_o other_o ground_n for_o your_o belief_n of_o they_o but_o our_o authority_n this_o be_v your_o assertion_n or_o major_a proposition_n to_o which_o if_o a_o enemy_n of_o christian_a religion_n will_v subsume_v and_o add_v this_o minor_a which_o be_v evident_o true_a but_o you_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o miracle_n and_o ground_n for_o belief_n of_o story_n but_o by_o our_o testimony_n or_o tradition_n as_o i_o have_v clear_o prove_v what_o will_v be_v the_o conclusion_n but_o this_o that_o there_o be_v just_a occasion_n to_o suspect_v true_a miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o question_v all_o story_n behold_v the_o effect_n of_o your_o tradition_n this_o i_o confirm_v out_o of_o what_o you_o
opinion_n which_o still_o make_v it_o more_o and_o more_o evident_a that_o with_o sectarye_n evidence_n affect_v rather_o their_o will_n or_o fancy_n than_o their_o understanding_n and_o here_o you_o ought_v in_o all_o reason_n to_o apply_v to_o the_o ancient_a father_n and_o learned_a protestant_n agree_v with_o we_o against_o their_o brethren_n what_o you_o say_v pag_n 40._o and_o 41._o n._n 13._o in_o favour_n of_o protestant_n in_o general_a to_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v no_o necessity_n of_o damn_v all_o those_o that_o be_v of_o contrary_a belief_n in_o these_o word_n the_o contrary_a belief_n may_v be_v about_o the_o sense_n of_o some_o place_n of_o scripture_n which_o be_v ambiguous_a and_o with_o probability_n capable_a of_o diverse_a sense_n and_o in_o such_o case_n it_o be_v no_o marvel_n and_o sure_o no_o sin_n if_o several_a man_n go_v several_a way_n also_o the_o contrary_a belief_n may_v be_v concern_v point_n wherein_o scripture_n may_v with_o so_o great_a probability_n be_v allege_v on_o both_o side_n which_o be_v a_o sure_a note_n of_o a_o point_n not_o necessary_a that_o man_n of_o honest_a and_o upright_a heart_n true_a lover_n of_o god_n and_o of_o truth_n such_o as_o desire_v above_o all_o thing_n to_o know_v god_n will_v and_o to_o do_v it_o may_v without_o any_o fault_n at_o all_o some_o go_v one_o way_n and_o some_o another_o and_o some_o and_o those_o as_o good_a man_n as_o either_o of_o the_o former_a suspend_v their_o judgement_n now_o whatsoever_o you_o judge_v of_o we_o yet_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o deny_v the_o ancient_a father_n and_o your_o own_o protestant_a brethren_n to_o be_v so_o qualify_v as_o you_o describe_v man_n of_o honest_a and_o upright_a heart_n true_a lover_n of_o god_n and_o the_o truth_n &c_n &c_n and_o therefore_o see_v they_o understand_v the_o word_n of_o god_n as_o we_o do_v you_o ought_v to_o absolve_v they_o yea_o and_o we_o and_o conceive_v that_o luther_n have_v no_o necessary_a cause_n to_o forsake_v the_o whole_a church_n for_o point_n maintain_v by_o man_n of_o so_o great_a quality_n in_o all_o kind_n who_o authority_n you_o can_v deny_v to_o be_v sufficient_a for_o make_v a_o doctrine_n probable_a and_o for_o divest_v the_o contrary_a of_o certainty_n and_o therefore_o according_a to_o hooker_n rule_n they_o ought_v to_o have_v suspend_v their_o persuasion_n and_o they_o offend_v against_o god_n by_o trouble_v the_o whole_a church_n 57_o neither_o can_v you_o object_n against_o the_o father_n what_o you_o say_v against_o we_o pag_n 280._o n._n 66._o that_o what_o may_v be_v enough_o for_o man_n in_o ignorance_n may_v be_v to_o know_v man_n not_o enough_o &c_n &c_n for_o beside_o that_o it_o be_v i_o know_v not_o whether_o more_o ridiculous_a or_o impious_a to_o say_v the_o father_n be_v man_n in_o ignorance_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n in_o error_n at_o least_o you_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o those_o protestant_n who_o agree_n with_o we_o be_v know_v man_n and_o have_v all_o the_o mean_n of_o know_v the_o truth_n which_o other_o protestant_n have_v and_o they_o be_v suppose_v by_o you_o i_o hope_v to_o be_v man_n of_o honest_a and_o upright_a heart_n may_v without_o any_o fault_n at_o all_o dissent_n from_o their_o brethren_n according_a to_o your_o own_o rule_n and_o since_o you_o must_v excuse_v they_o it_o be_v manifest_a injustice_n to_o condemn_v we_o who_o defend_v the_o same_o doctrine_n with_o they_o 58._o five_o it_o be_v a_o principle_n of_o nature_n that_o no_o private_a person_n much_o less_o a_o community_n and_o least_o of_o all_o the_o whole_a christian_a world_n shall_v be_v deprive_v of_o that_o good_a name_n of_o which_o they_o be_v once_o in_o peaoeable_a and_o certain_a possession_n without_o very_o clear_a and_o convince_a evidence_n see_v then_o even_a protestant_n grant_v that_o for_o divers_a age_n the_o church_n and_o the_o roman_a church_n in_o particular_a enjoy_v the_o good_a name_n and_o thing_n of_o be_v orthodox_n and_o pure_a she_o can_v be_v deprive_v of_o they_o without_o evidence_n neither_o can_v probability_n or_o uncertainty_n be_v sufficient_a to_o forsake_v her_o communion_n as_o noxious_a o_o of_o how_o different_a a_o mind_n be_v our_o novelist_n from_o the_o ancient_a doctor_n of_o god_n church_n who_o against_o all_o heretic_n oppose_v the_o tradition_n and_o succession_n of_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n as_o tertuilian_n the_o ss_z irenaeus_n epiphanius_n optatus_n and_o austin_n as_o calvin_n confess_v l._n 4._o instit_fw-la c._n 3._o and_o think_v to_o save_v himself_o with_o this_o answer_n sect._n 3_o cum_fw-la exrra_fw-la contoversiam_fw-la esset_fw-la etc._n etc._n see_v it_o be_v undoubted_o true_a that_o nothing_o be_v alter_v in_o doctrine_n from_o the_o begin_n till_o that_o age_n they_o do_v allege_v that_o which_o be_v sufficient_a to_o overthrow_v all_o new_a error_n namely_o that_o they_o be_v repugnant_a to_o the_o doctrine_n which_o by_o unanimous_a consent_n be_v constant_o keep_v from_o the_o very_a time_n of_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o but_o this_o answer_n can_v serve_v only_o to_o show_v that_o the_o argument_n of_o the_o father_n against_o heretic_n be_v plain_o of_o no_o force_n at_o all_o for_o if_o the_o tradition_n and_o succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v not_o assure_v of_o the_o particular_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n no_o argument_n can_v be_v take_v to_o prove_v any_o doctrine_n true_a because_o it_o have_v be_v teach_v in_o that_o sea_n in_o regard_n that_o without_o such_o assistance_n error_n may_v have_v creep_v in_o and_o tradition_n may_v have_v deliver_v a_o falsehood_n therefore_o the_o father_n allege_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n for_o a_o rule_n to_o all_o other_o must_v suppose_v such_o a_o assistance_n without_o which_o their_o adversary_n may_v have_v reject_v the_o tradition_n of_o that_o sea_n with_o as_o much_o facility_n as_o the_o tradition_n and_o authority_n of_o any_o other_o and_o to_o say_v the_o father_n ground_v their_o argument_n mere_o upon_o matter_n of_o fact_n that_o de_fw-la facto_fw-la the_o church_n of_o rome_n have_v deliver_v otherwise_o than_o those_o heretic_n hold_v and_o thence_o have_v infer_v the_o falsehood_n of_o their_o heresye_n will_v have_v be_v direct_o petitio_fw-la principij_fw-la as_o if_o they_o have_v say_v the_o church_n of_o rome_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la without_o any_o certain_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n hold_v the_o contrary_a of_o that_o which_o you_o heretic_n teach_v but_o that_o which_o she_o hold_v be_v true_a therefore_o your_o doctrine_n be_v false_a for_o this_o minor_a that_o which_o she_o hold_v be_v true_a have_v be_v a_o mere_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n without_o any_o proof_n at_o all_o and_o have_v be_v no_o more_o in_o effect_n then_o if_o the_o father_n have_v say_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o our_o doctrine_n which_o be_v the_o same_o with_o she_o be_v true_a because_o we_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v true_a and_o therefore_o you_o be_v false_a wherefore_o we_o must_v give_v glory_n to_o god_n and_o acknowledge_v that_o the_o father_n believe_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n above_o other_o church_n not_o to_o fall_v into_o error_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o religion_n howsoever_o let_v we_o take_v what_o calvin_n grant_v that_o at_o least_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n conserve_v the_o truth_n and_o purity_n of_o faith_n till_o the_o time_n of_o s._n austin_n that_o be_v between_o the_o four_o and_o five_o age_n after_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o heretic_n common_o grant_v that_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n be_v pure_a for_o the_o first_o five_o hundred_o year_n now_o let_v any_o man_n of_o judgement_n consider_v whether_o it_o be_v probable_a or_o possible_a that_o immediate_o after_o so_o great_a purity_n and_o sanctity_n so_o huge_a a_o deluge_n of_o superstition_n idolatrye_n heresye_n and_o corruption_n can_v have_v flow_v into_o the_o church_n of_o rome_n within_o the_o space_n of_o one_o hundred_o year_n that_o be_v till_o the_o time_n of_o s._n gregory_n the_o great_a without_o be_v note_v or_o speak_v of_o or_o contradict_v by_o any_o one_o especial_o if_o we_o consider_v that_o other_o doctrine_n which_o both_o protestant_n and_o catholics_n profess_v to_o be_v heresye_n be_v instant_o observe_v impugn_a and_o condemn_v and_o to_o say_v that_o those_o only_o of_o which_o they_o hold_v we_o guilty_a do_v pass_v without_o observation_n of_o any_o can_v be_v judge_v no_o better_a than_o a_o voluntary_a affect_v foolish_a fancy_n i_o beseech_v the_o protestant_a reader_n for_o the_o eternal_a good_a of_o his_o own_o soul_n to_o pause_v here_o a_o little_a and_o well_o ponder_v this_o point_n beside_o s._n gregory_n himself_o be_v a_o most_o holy_a learned_a and_o zealous_a pastor_n
without_o confession_n here_o you_o declare_v that_o perfect_a sorrow_n or_o contrition_n be_v not_o a_o sufficient_a disposition_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n even_o at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n a_o doctrine_n fit_a only_o to_o make_v poor_a sinner_n despaite_v against_o this_o hypocryticall_a and_o desperate_a doctrine_n of_o you_o i_o bring_v these_o reason_n 5._o first_n whereas_o you_o require_v for_o remission_n of_o sin_n not_o only_a sorrow_n and_o detestation_n of_o offence_n past_a with_o a_o firm_a purpose_n of_o amendment_n for_o time_n to_o come_v but_o also_o the_o object_n of_o such_o a_o act_n or_o purpose_n that_o be_v actual_a amendment_n which_o you_o say_v be_v a_o work_n of_o difficulty_n and_o time_n can_v be_v perform_v in_o a_o instant_n this_o doctrine_n seem_v to_o be_v contradict_v by_o yourself_o pag_n 133._o n._n 12._o in_o these_o word_n for_o those_o that_o have_v mean_n to_o find_v the_o truth_n and_o will_v not_o use_v they_o they_o protestant_n conceive_v though_o their_o case_n be_v dangerous_a yet_o if_o they_o die_v with_o a_o general_a repentance_n for_o all_o their_o sin_n know_v and_o unknown_a their_o salvation_n be_v not_o desperate_a you_o seem_v either_o to_o speak_v of_o man_n bring_v to_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n or_o at_o least_o you_o do_v not_o exclude_v such_o a_o case_n and_o of_o man_n in_o state_n of_o sin_n proceed_v from_o negligence_n to_o find_v the_o truth_n which_o negligence_n must_v be_v cause_v by_o some_o deadly_a sinful_a fear_n hope_v or_o some_o other_o vicious_a humane_a respect_n and_o consequent_o must_v have_v produce_v some_o vicious_a habit_n and_o yet_o you_o seem_v to_o say_v such_o man_n may_v be_v save_v by_o a_o general_a repentance_n which_o be_v only_o general_a can_v descend_v to_o all_o particular_n as_o the_o mortification_n of_o all_o particular_a ill_a habit_n must_v do_v yea_o you_o suppose_v that_o the_o particular_a sinful_a error_n be_v not_o know_v to_o they_o and_o much_o less_o can_v those_o vicious_a habit_n from_o which_o they_o proceed_v be_v mortify_v which_o can_v be_v do_v at_o that_o exigent_n of_o imminent_a death_n and_o therefore_o either_o the_o doctrine_n which_o you_o seem_v to_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v possible_a for_o such_o man_n to_o be_v save_v at_o the_o hour_n of_o their_o death_n be_v false_a or_o else_o you_o must_v grant_v that_o repentance_n require_v not_o the_o mortification_n of_o all_o vicious_a habit_n 6._o second_o as_o i_o say_v of_o your_o doctrine_n concern_v the_o fallibility_n of_o christian_a faith_n and_o of_o your_o doctrine_n of_o attrition_n that_o they_o can_v serve_v only_o to_o bring_v man_n to_o damnation_n so_o i_o say_v of_o this_o your_o assertion_n that_o no_o sinner_n who_o understand_v and_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v true_a can_v avoid_v desperation_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n when_o he_o see_v that_o the_o extirpation_n of_o all_o vicious_a habit_n be_v impossible_a and_o yet_o necessary_a to_o true_a repentance_n and_o salvation_n of_o his_o soul_n protestant_n be_v wont_a to_o receive_v the_o communion_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o their_o death_n which_o i_o suppose_v you_o will_v say_v ought_v not_o to_o be_v do_v without_o true_a repentance_n of_o their_o sin_n unless_o you_o will_v suppose_v all_o protestant_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o their_o death_n to_o be_v free_a from_o sin_n which_o be_v against_o that_o which_o protestant_n themselves_o suppose_v as_o shall_v instant_o appear_v and_o yet_o it_o be_v impossible_a for_o they_o at_o that_o time_n to_o attain_v your_o repentance_n by_o extirpation_n of_o all_o vicious_a habit_n in_o your_o book_n of_o common-prayer_n in_o the_o order_n of_o visit_v the_o sick_a it_o be_v say_v here_o shall_v the_o sick_a person_n make_v a_o special_a confession_n if_o he_o feel_v his_o conscience_n trouble_v with_o any_o ●eighty_a matter_n therefore_o as_o i_o say_v protestant_n may_v have_v some_o weighty_a matter_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o their_o death_n and_o then_o be_v set_v down_o the_o form_n of_o absolution_n which_o the_o pty_a or_o minister_n be_v to_o give_v but_o how_o can_v he_o who_o feel_v his_o conscience_n trouble_v with_o any_o weighty_a matter_n true_o repent_v at_o that_o last_o hour_n by_o your_o kind_n of_o repentance_n which_o you_o say_v be_v a_o work_n of_o difficulty_n and_o time_n or_o how_o can_v he_o be_v absolve_v without_o true_a repentance_n 7._o three_o this_o assertion_n be_v contrary_a to_o two_o doctrine_n very_o common_a and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v capital_a among_o protestant_n that_o faith_n only_a justifyes_n and_o that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o keep_v the_o commandment_n for_o that_o act_n of_o faith_n which_o they_o call_v justify_v and_o remissive_a of_o sin_n be_v exercise_v in_o a_o instant_n and_o will_v save_v a_o man_n though_o he_o shall_v die_v before_o it_o be_v in_o his_o power_n to_o extirpate_v all_o vicious_a habit_n and_o if_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o keep_v all_o the_o commandment_n it_o be_v impossible_a not_o to_o commit_v some_o sinful_a act_n whereby_o they_o be_v break_v and_o which_o must_v necessary_o leave_v after_o they_o some_o vicious_a habit_n and_o so_o instead_o of_o extirpate_v all_o vicious_a habit_n man_n must_v still_o be_v produce_v new_a one_o how_o then_o can_v you_o say_v pag_n 40●_n n._n 31._o repentance_n be_v a_o essectuall_a conversion_n from_o all_o sin_n to_o all_o holiness_n be_v not_o the_o break_n of_o god_n commandment_n a_o sin_n or_o can_v he_o be_v convert_v from_o all_o sin_n to_o all_o holiness_n and_o to_o universal_a obedience_n as_o you_o speak_v who_o can_v avoid_v sin_n but_o must_v still_o be_v disobey_v 8._o four_o in_o your_o doctrine_n what_o shall_v become_v of_o such_o as_o be_v new_o convert_v to_o the_o faith_n of_o christ_n from_o paganism_n judaisme_n or_o turkism_n be_v baptize_v at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n and_o yet_o be_v full_a of_o vicious_a habit_n which_o they_o have_v no_o time_n to_o mortify_v or_o root_v out_o or_o will_v you_o deny_v true_a repentance_n and_o remission_n of_o sin_n to_o those_o who_o after_o a_o life_n lead_v in_o many_o grievous_a sin_n and_o after_o the_o production_n of_o many_o ill_a habit_n be_v sudden_o convert_v to_o christian_a faith_n be_v baptize_v in_o their_o blood_n before_o they_o can_v destroy_v so_o many_o vicious_a habit_n 9_o five_o if_o you_o due_o consider_v what_o you_o say_v you_o will_v find_v your_o manner_n of_o repentance_n to_o be_v impossible_a not_o only_o in_o the_o case_n which_o i_o have_v mention_v but_o to_o those_o also_o who_o live_v a_o considerable_a time_n after_o forrow_n for_o their_o sin_n be_v it_o attrition_n or_o contrition_n for_o the_o habit_n of_o vice_n as_o they_o be_v produce_v by_o frequency_n of_o act_n so_o be_v they_o not_o take_v away_o but_o by_o multiplication_n of_o contrary_a act_n neither_o do_v they_o consist_v in_o indivisibli_fw-la so_o as_o if_o one_o degree_n be_v destroy_v there_o may_v not_o remain_v divers_a other_o which_o must_v be_v root_v out_o by_o little_a and_o little_a and_o yet_o while_o one_o habit_n be_v diminish_v or_o destroy_v another_o may_v remain_v entire_a and_o even_o be_v increase_v for_o example_n while_o the_o habit_n of_o injustice_n be_v destroy_v or_o diminish_v the_o habit_n of_o intemperance_n or_o impatience_n or_o timidity_n may_v remain_v as_o they_o be_v untouched_a or_o else_o grow_v to_o be_v more_o intense_a by_o act_n of_o those_o vice_n nay_o who_o do_v so_o perfect_o and_o total_o upon_o the_o very_a first_o onset_n relinquish_v any_o one_o vice_n that_o he_o be_v not_o moral_o speak_v subject_a to_o be_v commit_v some_o one_o act_n or_o other_o of_o that_o former_a vice_n whereby_o the_o habit_n will_v return_v to_o receive_v some_o increase_n and_o then_o how_o large_a a_o space_n of_o time_n may_v chance_v to_o slip_v away_o before_o the_o habit_n of_o one_o and_o much_o more_o of_o all_o vice_n be_v perfect_o root_v out_o especial_o if_o it_o be_v deep_o radicate_v and_o second_v and_o abbet_v or_o rather_o prevent_v by_o some_o inclination_n arise_v from_o complexion_n temptation_n of_o the_o devil_n bad_a example_n false_a principle_n of_o the_o world_n and_o other_o such_o cause_n which_o make_v the_o commit_n of_o sin_n obvious_a and_o easy_a whereas_o the_o contrary_a act_n of_o virtue_n not_o only_o find_v great_a resistance_n for_o the_o reason_n now_o mention_v but_o also_o because_o they_o be_v of_o themselves_o of_o a_o sublime_a nature_n and_o require_v great_a purity_n of_o intention_n without_o mixture_n of_o profit_n or_o pleasure_n or_o tincture_n of_o selfelove_n which_o universal_a conjuncture_n and_o perfect_a harmony_n of_o all_o good_a circumstance_n be_v so_o necessary_a that_o the_o want_n of_o any_o one_o be_v it_o never_o so_o small_a deprave_v the_o whole_a
than_o word_n even_o that_o maximianus_n who_o succeed_v your_o wicked_a great_a grandfather_n nestorius_n in_o the_o sea_n of_o constantinople_n be_v a_o monk_n and_o a_o holy_a man_n and_o far_o from_o be_v a_o parasite_n and_o a_o embassage_n be_v send_v to_o rome_n from_o he_o the_o emperor_n and_o people_n in_o congratulation_n of_o the_o victory_n get_v chief_o by_o mean_n of_o pope_n caelestinus_n against_o nestorius_n all_o which_o declare_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n 1200_o year_n ago_o though_o you_o tell_v we_o you_o can_v believe_v it_o and_o though_o you_o take_v notice_n of_o maximianus_n who_o succeed_v nestorius_n yet_o you_o think_v fit_a to_o dissemble_v this_o embassage_n etc._n etc._n whereof_o more_o may_v be_v see_v in_o baronius_n ann_n 431.432_o your_o answer_n give_v n._n 37._o to_o the_o authority_n cite_v by_o ch._n ma._n out_o of_o john_n patriarch_n of_o constantinople_n can_v satisfy_v any_o who_o read_v his_o word_n and_o your_o answer_n which_o be_v so_o evident_a that_o i_o need_v say_v no_o more_o 34._o for_o answer_v to_o your_o n._n 38.39.40.41_o if_o in_o any_o occasion_n particular_o in_o this_o i_o must_v entreat_v the_o reader_n not_o to_o trust_v your_o sum_n up_o the_o discourse_n of_o ch_z ma_n n._n 20.21.22.23_o but_o to_o trust_v only_o his_o own_o eye_n which_o if_o he_o do_v i_o be_o sure_a he_o will_v find_v all_o that_o you_o object_n against_o we_o in_o the_o say_v number_n to_o be_v answer_v already_o when_o we_o prove_v that_o faith_n be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o that_o in_o the_o ordinary_a course_n of_o god_n providence_n it_o be_v exauditu_fw-la by_o the_o preach_n of_o pastor_n prelate_n doctor_n etc._n etc._n and_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n in_o the_o true_a church_n beside_o what_o have_v be_v say_v heretofore_o appear_v by_o the_o confession_n of_o the_o best_a learned_a protestant_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o brereley_o tract_n 2._o sect_n 6._o and_o tract_n 2._o cap._n 3._o sect_n 4._o and_o tract_n 2._o cap._n 2._o sect_n 3._o subdivis_fw-la 2._o no_o man_n can_v doubt_v but_o that_o god_n may_v teach_v we_o in_o what_o manner_n he_o please_v but_o see_v de_fw-fr facto_fw-la he_o will_v have_v man_n to_o be_v teach_v by_o man_n and_o that_o faith_n be_v his_o gift_n as_o we_o prove_v in_o the_o introduction_n we_o shall_v be_v sure_a never_o to_o attain_v this_o inward_a gift_n otherwise_o than_o by_o those_o outward_a mean_n nor_o can_v we_o believe_v the_o doctrine_n of_o christ_n without_o the_o introduction_n of_o teacher_n appoint_v and_o teach_v by_o his_o holy_a spirit_n neither_o do_v if_o follow_v that_o by_o this_o mean_n one_o shall_v be_v necessitate_v to_o be_v a_o heretic_n because_o that_o there_o shall_v have_v be_v a_o perpe_fw-mi ●uall_a succession_n of_o believer_n in_o all_o point_v orthodox_n be_v not_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v in_o our_o power_n as_o you_o argue_v most_o weak_o and_o see_v protestant_n teach_v that_o heresy_n be_v a_o deviation_n from_o scripture_n and_o that_o it_o be_v not_o in_o the_o power_n of_o man_n to_o conserve_v scripture_n incorrupt_v protestant_n may_v be_v heretic_n whether_o they_o will_v or_o no_o if_o your_o objection_n be_v of_o any_o force_n and_o why_o do_v you_o not_o make_v this_o argument_n man_n can_v sin_v unless_o they_o exist_v and_o be_v in_o their_o right_a wit_n but_o that_o a_o man_n be_v in_o his_o right_a wit_n or_o exist_v be_v not_o in_o his_o power_n for_o who_o can_v be_v his_o own_o creator_n therefore_o sin_v or_o not_o sin_v depend_v not_o on_o these_o thing_n as_o therefore_o man_n may_v be_v heretic_n and_o sinner_n because_o the_o facto_fw-la god_n conserves_n scripture_n and_o preserve_v man_n in_o their_o be_v so_o see_v he_o have_v promise_v to_o conserve_v his_o church_n without_o error_n against_o faith_n and_o give_v every_o one_o sufficient_a grace_n to_o follow_v her_o direction_n if_o they_o refuse_v to_o do_v so_o they_o become_v heretic_n by_o their_o own_o freewill_n not_o by_o any_o necessity_n your_o say_n by_o this_o reason_n you_o shall_v say_v as_o well_o that_o no_o man_n can_v be_v a_o good_a bishop_n or_o pastor_n or_o king_n or_o magistrate_n or_o father_n that_o succeed_v a_o bad_a one_o be_v manifest_o impertinent_a see_v the_o direction_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o the_o personal_a life_n but_o the_o public_a definition_n and_o doctrine_n of_o such_o as_o god_n have_v appoint_v to_o be_v our_o guide_n and_o who_o he_o have_v command_v we_o to_o obey_v 36._o see_v your_o n._n 39_o contain_v only_o a_o heap_n or_o rabble_n of_o demand_n without_o tell_v we_o what_o you_o hold_v i_o be_v much_o to_o blame_v if_o i_o will_v spend_v time_n about_o they_o especial_o i_o have_v prove_v out_o of_o father_n and_o learned_a protestant_n that_o the_o true_a church_n can_v subsist_v without_o a_o succession_n of_o bishop_n which_o be_v the_o point_n you_o desire_n shall_v be_v prove_v before_o you_o answer_v the_o argument_n of_o ch._n ma._n and_o your_o own_o demand_n whereof_o i_o must_v tell_v you_o in_o general_a some_o be_v ridiculous_a some_o dangerous_a and_o tend_v to_o confusion_n some_o beg_v the_o question_n some_o contain_v shrewd_a insinuation_n against_o the_o necessity_n of_o bishop_n some_o be_v evident_o fall_v and_o all_o of_o no_o force_n against_o us._n you_o ask_v whether_o ch_z ma_n in_o say_v the_o donatists_n sect_n be_v confine_v to_o africa_n do_v not_o forget_v himself_o and_o contradict_v what_o he_o say_v n_n 17._o that_o they_o have_v some_o of_o their_o sect_n reside_v in_o rome_n but_o this_o be_v a_o poor_a contradiction_n for_o even_o d._n potter_n pag_n 125._o cite_v s._n austin_n affirm_v that_o the_o donatist_n hold_v the_o church_n to_o have_v perish_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n except_o in_o their_o sect_n in_o africa_n and_o pag_n 126._o the_o doctor_n deny_v not_o but_o they_o have_v some_o of_o their_o sect_n in_o rome_n and_o you_o express_o affirm_v it_o yet_o because_o they_o be_v so_o few_o as_o can_v not_o make_v any_o considerable_a number_n it_o may_v well_o be_v say_v that_o their_o sect_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la be_v confine_v to_o africa_n as_o they_o be_v wont_a to_o say_v and_z as_o ch_z ma_n must_v speak_v in_o their_o sense_n concern_v they_o and_o he_o be_v express_o warrant_v by_o s._n optatus_n lib_n 2._o say_v that_o the_o donatists_n bishop_n in_o rome_n be_v episcopus_fw-la sine_fw-la populo_fw-la non_fw-la enim_fw-la grex_fw-la aut_fw-la populus_fw-la appellandi_fw-la fuerant_fw-la pauci_fw-la qui_fw-la inter_fw-la quadraginta_fw-la &_o quod_fw-la excurrit_fw-la basilicas_fw-la locum_fw-la ubi_fw-la colligerent_fw-la non_fw-la habebant_fw-la 37._o all_o that_o be_v material_a in_o your_o n_n 40._o have_v be_v answer_v heretofore_o to_o your_o small_a credit_n you_o have_v no_o reason_n to_o alter_v the_o translation_n of_o ch._n ma._n of_o the_o word_n of_o tertullian_n how_o be_v it_o likely_a that_o so_o many_o and_o so_o great_a church_n shall_v err_v in_o one_o faith_n quid_fw-la vetisimile_n est_fw-la ut_fw-la tot_fw-la ac_fw-la tantae_fw-la in_o unam_fw-la fidem_fw-la erraverint_fw-la which_o you_o say_v shall_v be_v translate_v shall_v err_v into_o one_o faith_n for_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o your_o obscure_a expression_n shall_v err_v into_o one_o faith_n must_v signify_v that_o it_o be_v not_o likely_a so_o many_o different_a church_n agree_v shall_v err_v in_o that_o faith_n in_o which_o they_o agree_v which_o be_v according_a to_o the_o clear_a expression_n of_o ch_z ma_n and_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o the_o reason_n why_o they_o can_v not_o err_v into_o one_o faith_n must_v be_v because_o error_n can_v not_o consist_v with_o one_o faith_n for_o if_o it_o can_v they_o may_v err_v into_o one_o faith_n and_o so_o your_o translation_n if_o it_o be_v good_a must_v be_v behold_v to_o his_o expression_n you_o say_v in_o the_o pag_n 362._o that_o the_o roman_a church_n be_v catholic_a to_o herself_o alone_o and_o heretical_a to_o all_o the_o rest_n of_o christian_a church_n and_o in_o this_o pag_n 332._o n._n 11._o you_o say_v it_o be_v not_o heresy_n to_o oppose_v any_o truth_n propound_v by_o the_o church_n but_o only_o such_o a_o truth_n as_o be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n which_o sentence_n put_v together_o conclude_v the_o roman_a church_n to_o want_v what_o be_v essential_a to_o a_o church_n and_o yet_o you_o express_o teach_v in_o other_o part_n of_o your_o book_n that_o she_o err_v not_o in_o essential_a or_o fundamental_a point_n how_o will_v you_o save_v yourself_o from_o a_o contradiction_n in_o this_o as_o also_o in_o your_o say_n that_o it_o be_v not_o heresy_n to_o oppose_v any_o truth_n but_o only_o such_o a_o truth_n as_o in_o a_o essential_a part_n
infidelity_n unmask_v or_o the_o confutation_n of_o a_o book_n publish_v by_o mr._n william_n chillingworth_n under_o this_o title_n the_o religion_n of_o protestant_n a_o safe_a way_n to_o salvation_n i_o will_v thou_o be_v cold_a or_o hot_a but_o because_o thou_o be_v lukewarm_a i_o will_v begin_v to_o vomit_v the_o out_o of_o my_o mouth_n apocal_a c_o 3._o v._o 15._o 16._o print_a in_o gant_n by_o maximilian_n graet_n a_o o._n d_o ni_fw-fr m._n dc_o lii_o permissu_fw-la superiorum_fw-la to_o the_o reader_n 1._o the_o first_o thing_n that_o i_o be_o to_o request_v of_o thou_o good_a reader_n be_v to_o read_v this_o preface_n before_o thou_o address_v thyself_o to_o peruse_v the_o book_n and_o then_o not_o to_o read_v irregular_o beginning_n with_o the_o end_n or_o at_o the_o middle_n or_o with_o what_o shall_v be_v offer_v by_o mere_a chance_n but_o to_o take_v the_o follow_a introduction_n and_o chapter_n as_o they_o come_v in_o order_n that_o so_o the_o former_a may_v be_v a_o preparation_n to_o the_o latter_a and_o the_o latter_a may_v receyve_v light_a and_o strength_n from_o the_o former_a for_o the_o matter_n be_v connect_v of_o themselves_o will_v grow_v to_o be_v either_o unintelligible_a or_o obscure_a or_o confuse_a if_o their_o right_a consequence_n and_o orderly_o sequeles_a be_v neglect_v or_o invert_v and_o will_v certain_o come_v by_o that_o mean_n to_o be_v pervert_v and_o mistake_v 2._o i_o can_v doubt_v but_o that_o a_o answer_n to_o mr_n chillingworths_n book_n have_v be_v expect_v long_o since_o but_o they_o who_o be_v acquaint_v with_o the_o many_o and_o long_o and_o great_a and_o insuperable_a obstacle_n of_o voyage_n to_o remote_a country_n long_o frequent_a and_o great_a sickness_n and_o unavoidable_a employment_n impose_v by_o authority_n which_o i_o ought_v not_o to_o resist_v though_o some_o can_v witness_v that_o even_o in_o that_o i_o strain_a obedience_n more_o than_o i_o shall_v have_v adventure_v to_o do_v upon_o any_o other_o occasion_n which_o have_v cross_v my_o earnest_n and_o constant_a desire_n will_v not_o so_o much_o marvel_n that_o this_o work_n have_v be_v long_o in_o do_v as_o that_o final_o it_o be_v do_v this_o one_o thing_n be_v evident_a that_o not_o any_o difficulty_n to_o answer_v can_v have_v be_v cause_n of_o so_o long_o delay_n since_o whosoever_o can_v answer_v now_o can_v have_v do_v it_o much_o soon_o if_o extrinsecall_v impediment_n have_v be_v remove_v 3._o as_o for_o that_o unfortunate_a man_n who_o i_o confute_v truth_n oblige_v i_o to_o declare_v that_o beside_o his_o most_o contemn_v disdain_v proud_a bitter_a and_o even_o bloody_a way_n of_o answer_v by_o seek_v to_o make_v odious_a both_o the_o religion_n and_o person_n of_o catholic_n as_o will_n appear_v by_o what_o i_o note_v in_o due_a place_n i_o must_v insist_v upon_o this_o that_o in_o reality_n his_o book_n be_v no_o confutation_n of_o charity_n maintain_v who_o answer_v dr_n potter_n according_a to_o the_o ground_n of_o protestant_n not_o of_o socinian_n or_o any_o other_o new_a sect._n and_o therefore_o mr_n chillingworth_n fly_v to_o new_a principle_n have_v abandon_v dr_n potter_n and_o all_o the_o elder_a kind_n of_o protestant_n and_o leave_v his_o adversary_n in_o possession_n of_o be_v unanswered_a agreable_o to_o his_o ingenuous_a acknowledgement_n when_o time_n be_v that_o charity_n maintain_v can_v not_o be_v defeat_v by_o any_o force_n of_o protestant_n and_o that_o he_o have_v a_o way_n to_o confute_v he_o 16._o he_o see_v the_o judgement_n of_o a_o university-man_n pag_n 68_o sect_n 16._o miserable_a protestancy_n that_o can_v find_v no_o advocate_n except_o a_o enemy_n to_o it_o and_o all_o christianity_n who_o take_v this_o occasion_n only_o to_o vent_v new_a heresy_n no_o less_o repugnant_a to_o protestant_n than_o to_o catholic_n do_v not_o protestant_n foretell_v and_o in_o f●ct_a prophecy_n their_o own_o ruin_n in_o prefer_v this_o unhappy_a man_n before_o all_o england_n to_o be_v defender_n of_o their_o faith_n who_o can_v wonder_v to_o behold_v that_o nation_n swim_v in_o desolation_n and_o blood_n which_o endure_v to_o behold_v a_o book_n publish_v approve_a applaud_v which_o purposely_o and_o direct_o teach_v christian_a faith_n not_o to_o be_v infallible_o true_a and_o consequent_o that_o whatsoever_o christian_n have_v hitherto_o believe_v of_o scripture_n of_o christ_n of_o all_o christian_a veritye_n may_v for_o aught_o they_o can_v certain_o know_v to_o the_o contrary_a prove_v fabulous_a false_a or_o no_o better_a than_o dream_n if_o he_o who_o omit_v to_o enact_v any_o law_n or_o decree_v any_o punishment_n for_o parricide_n give_v the_o reason_n thereof_o by_o ask_v whether_o there_o can_v possible_o be_v any_o such_o crime_n much_o more_o charity_n maintain_v have_v no_o reason_n to_o fetch_v from_o hell_n this_o antichristian_a doctrine_n never_o imagine_v that_o any_o christian_n will_v profess_v to_o maintain_v so_o wicked_a a_o tenet_n the_o contrary_a whereof_o even_o dr_n potter_n deliver_v not_o as_o a_o thing_n disputable_a or_o which_o need_v any_o proof_n but_o as_o a_o first_o principle_n to_o be_v suppose_v among_o christian_n 4._o present_o upon_o the_o publication_n of_o mr_n chillingworths_n book_n he_o be_v by_o diverse_a print_a treatise_n charge_v with_o this_o and_o other_o unchristian_a doctrine_n and_o express_o conjure_v to_o clear_v himself_o under_o pain_n of_o be_v esteem_v guilty_a if_o he_o be_v silent_a as_o by_o the_o church_n conquerant_fw-la over_o humane_a wit_n the_o total_a sum_n the_o judgement_n of_o a_o university-man_n christianity_n maintain_v but_o never_o can_v be_v induce_v to_o answer_v for_o himself_o in_o any_o one_o particular_a which_o silence_n in_o a_o matter_n of_o this_o nature_n can_v proceed_v only_o from_o guiltiness_n as_o he_o be_v express_o forwarn_v in_o the_o direction_n to_o n._n n._n chap_n 3._o 5._o if_o any_o undertake_v a_o confutation_n of_o my_o book_n he_o will_v do_v himself_o manifest_a wrong_n unless_o he_o do_v i_o so_o much_o right_n as_o not_o to_o pretend_v a_o answer_n to_o i_o if_o he_o abandon_v mr_n chillingworth_n and_o forsake_v his_o ground_n and_o so_o oppose_v i_o by_o new_a principle_n as_o mr_n chillingworth_n injurious_o deal_v with_o charity_n maintain_v or_o if_o he_o will_v profess_v not_o to_o defend_v the_o particular_a tenet_n or_o debate_n of_o mr_n chillingworth_n i_o must_v exact_v of_o he_o that_o by_o declare_v so_o much_o the_o world_n may_v know_v that_o mr_n chillingworth_n have_v be_v confute_v who_o whosoever_o forsake_v he_o can_v be_v judge_v to_o answer_v my_o book_n but_o to_o commence_v a_o new_a suit_n or_o begin_v a_o new_a work_n of_o which_o i_o shall_v not_o esteame_n myself_o oblige_v to_o take_v any_o notice_n for_o as_o charity_n maintain_v confute_v protestant_n not_o socinian_n so_o i_o confute_v mr_n chillingworths_n book_n and_o not_o the_o principle_n of_o other_o man_n or_o sect_n disagree_v from_o he_o 6._o it_o be_v also_o desire_a that_o he_o follow_v not_o mr_n chillingworth_n in_o seek_v to_o draw_v his_o adversary_n to_o handle_v particular_a point_n nothing_o pertinent_a to_o our_o present_a general_a controversy_n that_o he_o cite_v the_o place_n of_o those_o author_n who_o authoritye_n he_o allege_v which_o mr_n chillingworth_n frequent_o omitt_v to_o do_v that_o he_o propose_v my_o argument_n without_o fraud_n disguise_n or_o disadvantage_n as_o i_o have_v be_v so_o very_o careful_a and_o even_o scrupulous_a to_o relate_v with_o all_o sincerity_n mr_n chillingworth_n opinion_n reason_n and_o word_n that_o not_o seldom_o i_o have_v recourse_n to_o the_o errata_fw-la note_v in_o the_o end_n of_o his_o book_n hold_v it_o a_o unjust_a thing_n to_o charge_v he_o with_o any_o over_o sight_n of_o the_o print_n though_o he_o have_v not_o deal_v so_o fair_o with_o charity_n maintain_v who_o he_o impugn_v even_o in_o thing_n place_v among_o the_o errata_fw-la of_o the_o printer_n and_o correct_v 7._o i_o profess_v with_o all_o sincerity_n and_o seriousness_n that_o i_o have_v not_o witting_o omit_v to_o answer_v any_o one_o point_n in_o my_o adversary_n whole_a book_n either_o particular_o and_o explicit_o or_o else_o in_o principle_n which_o involve_v a_o answer_n to_o all_o particular_n when_o they_o shall_v be_v propose_v i_o be_o necessitate_v to_o repeete_v the_o same_o thing_n either_o to_o answer_v my_o adversary_n in_o his_o repetition_n or_o for_o the_o connection_n of_o the_o matter_n which_o require_v it_o or_o because_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v that_o not_o every_o reader_n will_v remember_v or_o know_v how_o to_o apply_v what_o be_v past_a i_o be_o not_o ignorant_a that_o in_o answer_v mr_n chillingworth_n i_o confute_v a_o academy_n of_o socinian_o to_o who_o he_o owe_v the_o matter_n and_o substance_n of_o his_o book_n though_o it_o appear_v under_o his_o name_n only_o but_o truth_n be_v
of_o this_o introduction_n liii_o let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o handle_v the_o matter_n itself_o for_o which_o i_o know_v and_o acknowledge_v the_o necessity_n of_o grace_n and_o therefore_o renounce_v all_o confidence_n in_o humane_a reason_n and_o force_v of_o nature_n with_o profound_a humility_n beg_v of_o the_o eternal_a father_n for_o the_o merit_n of_o his_o only_a son_n christ_n jesus_n true_a god_n and_o true_a man_n the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o his_o divine_a spirit_n of_o wisdom_n understanding_n counsel_n strength_n knowledge_n piety_n and_o above_o all_o the_o spirit_n of_o the_o fear_n of_o our_o lord_n move_v and_o assist_v i_o willing_o to_o suffer_v death_n rather_o than_o witting_o utter_v any_o least_o falsehood_n or_o conceal_v any_o truth_n in_o matter_n concern_v faith_n and_o religion_n and_o so_o prostrate_a in_o soul_n and_o body_n i_o pray_v with_o the_o wiseman_n sap._n 9_o 4.10_o o_o lord_n of_o mercy_n give_v i_o wisdom_n the_o assistant_n of_o thy_o seat_n send_v she_o from_o thy_o holy_a heaven_n and_o from_o the_o seat_n of_o thy_o greatness_n that_o she_o may_v be_v with_o i_o and_o may_v labour_v with_o i_o that_o so_o my_o labour_n of_o themselves_o most_o weak_a may_v by_o grace_n tend_v first_o to_o the_o glory_n of_o the_o most_o bless_a trinity_n and_o next_o to_o the_o eternal_a good_a of_o soul_n chap_n i._o christian_n faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v infallible_o true_a 1._o as_o all_o catholic_n have_v reason_n to_o grieve_v that_o we_o be_v necessitate_v to_o prove_v the_o necessity_n of_o god_n grace_n against_o our_o modern_a pelagian_n so_o every_o christian_n yea_o every_o one_o who_o profess_v any_o faith_n religion_n or_o worship_n of_o a_o god_n may_v wonder_v that_o deal_n with_o one_o who_o pretend_v to_o the_o name_n of_o christian_a i_o shall_v be_v force_v to_o prove_v the_o certainty_n and_o infallibility_n of_o christian_a faith_n which_o m._n chillingworth_n not_o only_o deny_v but_o deep_o censure_v pag._n 328_o n_n o_o 6._o as_o a_o doctrine_n most_o presumptuous_a and_o unchariatble_a and_o pag._n 325._o n._n 3._o as_o a_o great_a error_n and_o of_o dangerous_a and_o pernicious_a consequence_n and_o take_v much_o pain_n to_o prove_v the_o contraay_n that_o be_v the_o fallibility_n of_o christian_a faith_n a_o strange_a undertake_n whereby_o he_o be_v sure_a to_o loose_v by_o win_v and_o by_o all_o his_o argument_n to_o gain_v only_o this_o conclusion_n that_o his_o faith_n in_o christ_n of_o scripture_n and_o all_o the_o mysterye_n contain_v therein_o may_v prove_v fabulous_a and_o false_a and_o yet_o i_o confess_v it_o to_o be_v a_o thing_n very_o certain_a and_o evident_a that_o the_o denial_n of_o jnfallibility_n in_o god_n church_n for_o decide_v controversye_n of_o faith_n must_v inevitable_o cast_v man_n upon_o this_o desperate_a unchristian_a and_o antichristian_a doctrine_n and_o while_o protestant_n maintain_v the_o church_n to_o be_v fallible_a they_o can_v avoid_v this_o sequel_n that_o their_o doctrine_n may_v be_v false_a since_o without_o jnfallibility_n in_o the_o church_n they_o can_v be_v absolute_o certain_a that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n o_o what_o a_o scandal_n do_v these_o man_n cast_v on_o christian_a religion_n by_o either_o direct_o acknowledge_v or_o lay_v ground_n from_o which_o they_o must_v yield_v christian_a faith_n not_o to_o be_v jnfallible_o true_a while_o jew_n turk_n pagan_n and_o all_o who_o profess_v any_o religion_n hold_v their_o belief_n to_o be_v jnfallible_a and_o may_v just_o upbraid_v we_o that_o even_a christian_n confess_v themselves_o not_o to_o be_v certain_a that_o they_o be_v in_o the_o right_n and_o have_v with_o approbation_n of_o great_a man_n in_o a_o famous_a university_n publish_v to_o the_o world_n such_o their_o sense_n and_o belief_n in_o the_o mean_a time_n in_o this_o occasion_n as_o in_o diverse_a other_o i_o can_v but_o observe_v that_o heretic_n always_o walk_v in_o extreme_n this_o man_n teach_v christian_a faith_n in_o general_a and_o the_o very_a ground_n thereof_o not_o to_o be_v infallible_o certain_a other_o affirm_v faith_n to_o be_v certain_a even_o as_o it_o be_v apply_v to_o particular_a person_n who_o they_o hold_v to_o be_v justify_v by_o a_o absolute_a certain_a belief_n that_o they_o be_v just_a 2._o but_o now_o let_v we_o come_v to_o prove_v this_o truth_n christian_a faith_n be_v absolute_o and_o infallible_o true_a and_o not_o subject_a to_o any_o least_o falsehood_n wherein_o although_o i_o maintain_v the_o cause_n of_o all_o christian_n and_o of_o all_o man_n and_o mankind_n who_o by_o the_o very_a instinct_n of_o nature_n conceive_v the_o true_a religion_n to_o signify_v a_o thing_n certain_a as_o proceed_v from_o god_n and_o upon_o which_o man_n may_v and_o ought_v secure_o to_o rely_v without_o possibility_n of_o be_v deceive_v and_o that_o for_o this_o reason_n the_o whole_a world_n ought_v to_o join_v with_o i_o against_o a_o common_a adversary_n yet_o even_o for_o this_o very_a reason_n i_o know_v not_o whither_o to_o esteem_v it_o a_o more_o dissicile_a task_n or_o lamentable_a necessity_n that_o we_o be_v in_o a_o matter_n of_o this_o moment_n and_o quality_n to_o prove_v principle_n or_o a_o truth_n which_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o less_o certain_a than_o any_o argument_n that_o can_v be_v bring_v to_o prove_v it_o as_o hitherto_o all_o good_a christian_n have_v believe_v nothing_o to_o be_v more_o certain_o believe_v by_o christian_a faith_n than_o that_o itself_o be_v most_o certain_a yet_o confide_v in_o his_o grace_n who_o gift_n we_o acknowledge_v faith_n to_o be_v i_o will_v endeavour_v to_o prove_v and_o defend_v this_o most_o christian_n and_o fundamental_a truth_n against_o the_o pride_n of_o humane_a wit_n and_o all_o presumption_n upon_o natural_a force_n 3._o our_o first_o reason_n may_v be_v take_v from_o that_o which_o we_o have_v touch_v already_o of_o the_o joint_a conceit_n unanimous_a consent_n and_o inbred_a sense_n of_o man_n who_o conceyve_v divine_a faith_n and_o religion_n to_o imply_v a_o certainty_n of_o truth_n and_o if_o they_o do_v once_o entertain_v a_o contrary_a persuasion_n they_o will_v soon_o be_v carry_v to_o embrace_v no_o religion_n at_o all_o than_o weary_a their_o thought_n in_o election_n of_o one_o rather_o than_o another_o be_v prepossess_v that_o the_o best_a can_v bring_v with_o it_o no_o absolute_a certainty_n thus_o by_o the_o universal_a agreement_n of_o man_n we_o prove_v that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o from_o thence_o conclude_v that_o the_o belief_n of_o a_o deity_n proceed_v from_o the_o light_n of_o nature_n which_o also_o assure_v we_o that_o god_n have_v a_o providence_n over_o all_o thing_n and_o can_v want_v mean_n to_o communicate_v himself_o with_o reasonable_a creature_n by_o way_n of_o some_o light_n and_o knowledge_n exempt_a from_o fear_n or_o possibility_n of_o fraud_n or_o falsehood_n especial_o since_o rational_a nature_n be_v of_o itself_o 〈…〉_o truth_n and_o religion_n or_o worship_n of_o a_o god_n this_o consideration_n be_v excellent_o ponder_v and_o deliver_v by_o s._n austin_n de_fw-la utilitate_fw-la credendi_fw-la cap._n 16._o in_o these_o word_n authority_n alone_o be_v that_o which_o incite_v ignorant_a person_n that_o they_o make_v haste_n to_o wisdom_n till_o we_o can_v of_o ourselves_o understand_v the_o truth_n it_o be_v a_o miserable_a thing_n to_o be_v deceyve_v by_o authority_n yet_o more_o miserable_a it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v move_v therewith_o for_o if_o the_o divine_a providence_n do_v not_o command_v humane_a thing_n no_o care_n be_v to_o be_v take_v of_o religion_n but_o if_o the_o beauty_n of_o all_o thing_n which_o without_o doubt_n we_o be_v to_o believe_v to_o flow_v from_o some_o fountain_n of_o most_o true_a pulcritude_n by_o a_o certain_a internal_a feeling_n do_v public_o and_o private_o exhort_v all_o best_a soul_n to_o seek_v and_o serve_v god_n we_o can_v despair_v that_o by_o the_o same_o god_n there_o be_v appoint_v some_o authority_n on_o which_o we_o rely_v as_o upon_o a_o infallible_a step_n may_v be_v elevate_v to_o god_n behold_v a_o mean_n to_o attain_v certainty_n in_o belief_n by_o some_o infallible_a authority_n appoint_v by_o god_n which_o can_v be_v none_o but_o the_o church_n from_o which_o we_o be_v most_o certain_a what_o be_v the_o write_v or_o unwritten_a word_n of_o god_n 4._o m._n chillingworth_n profess_v to_o receive_v scripture_n from_o the_o universal_a tradition_n of_o all_o church_n though_o yet_o there_o be_v scarce_o any_o book_n of_o scripture_n which_o have_v not_o be_v question_v or_o reject_v by_o some_o much_o more_o therefore_o ought_v all_o christian_a to_o believe_v christian_a faith_n to_o be_v jnfallible_a as_o be_v the_o most_o universal_a judgement_n and_o tradition_n of_o all_o christian_n for_o their_o christian_n belief_n and_o of_o all_o man_n for_o their_o
n._n 154._o i_o hope_v you_o will_v give_v we_o leave_v to_o consider_v whether_o the_o motive_n to_o your_o church_n be_v not_o impeach_v and_o oppose_v with_o compulsives_n and_o enforcement_n from_o it_o so_o other_o will_v say_v of_o the_o motive_n to_o christian_a religion_n that_o they_o be_v impeach_v with_o contrary_a compulsives_n from_o it_o beside_o the_o sublimity_n of_o the_o misterye_n themselves_o above_o humane_a reason_n which_o be_v apt_a to_o doubt_v of_o whatsoever_o it_o do_v not_o ynderstand_v as_o we_o fear_v not_o only_o bad_a but_o also_o unknown_a path_n and_o as_o to_o our_o eye_n the_o clear_a sky_n if_o it_o be_v almost_o beyond_o our_o ken_n seem_v to_o be_v a_o kind_n of_o darkness_n thus_o than_o the_o probability_n of_o chillingworths_n faith_n be_v bring_v down_o from_o the_o high_a pretend_a degree_n of_o probability_n become_v compatible_a with_o good_a and_o great_a probability_n of_o the_o contrary_a side_n as_o heat_n and_o cold_a if_o neither_o of_o they_o be_v in_o the_o most_o intense_a degree_n may_v stand_v together_o and_o consequent_o the_o understanding_n may_v conceyve_v not_o only_o a_o possibility_n but_o a_o probability_n also_o and_o a_o fear_n that_o the_o christian_a religion_n be_v false_a for_o avoid_v which_o wicked_a sequel_n there_o be_v no_o other_o remedy_n except_o to_o acknowledge_v faith_n to_o be_v a_o assent_n certain_a and_o infallible_a above_o all_o probability_n of_o humane_a motive_n or_o argument_n of_o credibility_n 19_o and_o in_o this_o occasion_n we_o may_v observe_v that_o the_o example_n usual_o allege_v to_o prove_v that_o we_o can_v no_o more_o doubt_n of_o the_o conclusion_n draw_v from_o the_o argument_n of_o credibility_n than_o a_o man_n doubt_n whether_o such_o a_o one_o be_v his_o father_n and_o the_o like_a do_v not_o urge_v but_o rather_o may_v be_v retort_v for_o in_o such_o case_n it_o be_v suppose_v that_o there_o be_v many_o good_a reason_n for_o one_o side_n for_o example_n that_o such_o a_o man_n be_v father_n to_o such_o a_o child_n etc._n etc._n and_o none_o to_o the_o contrary_n but_o it_o happen_v otherwise_o in_o our_o case_n there_o be_v many_o and_o hard_n objection_n obvious_a to_o humane_a reason_n against_o the_o mysterye_n of_o faith_n which_o may_v diminish_v that_o degree_n of_o assent_n which_o otherwise_o may_v be_v ground_v upon_o the_o argument_n of_o credibility_n if_o they_o be_v consider_v alone_o as_o one_o can_v not_o believe_v such_o a_o man_n to_o be_v his_o father_n if_o he_o have_v some_o very_a probable_a proof_n for_o the_o contrary_a with_o the_o same_o firm_a persuasion_n as_o he_o will_v do_v in_o case_n no_o such_o proof_n do_v offer_v themselves_o and_o so_o as_o i_o say_v this_o and_o the_o like_a argument_n and_o example_n may_v be_v retort_v againist_n those_o who_o bring_v they_o and_o still_o we_o must_v conclude_v that_o we_o can_v believe_v christian_a religion_n as_o we_o ought_v without_o a_o absolute_a certain_a and_o jnfallible_a assent_n which_o will_v more_o appear_v by_o the_o reason_n follow_v 20._o these_o very_a motive_n of_o credibility_n manuduce_v and_o send_v we_o up_o to_o a_o authority_n which_o be_v able_a to_o transfuse_v great_a perfection_n to_o our_o assent_n than_o they_o themselves_o can_v give_v because_o they_o tell_v we_o of_o object_n to_o be_v believe_v for_o divine_a revelation_n and_o so_o proclaim_v themselves_o to_o be_v only_a disposition_n and_o preparation_n which_o be_v suppose_v god_n afford_v his_o particular_a grace_n for_o produce_v a_o act_n proportionable_a to_o his_o divine_a testimony_n as_o with_o some_o proportion_n by_o hear_v or_o read_v spiritual_a thing_n the_o species_n be_v excite_v and_o god_n by_o that_o occasion_n give_v inspiration_n for_o faith_n hope_n charity_n etc._n etc._n above_o the_o natural_a power_n of_o the_o external_a word_n and_o as_o experimental_a knowledge_n by_o sense_n be_v a_o disposition_n to_o scientifical_a knowledge_n which_o yet_o take_v not_o its_o nature_n essence_n and_o perfection_n from_o the_o sense_n 21._o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o man_n be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v christian_a religion_n not_o in_o what_o manner_n soever_o but_o as_o a_o doctrine_n deliver_v and_o reveal_v by_o god_n and_o therefore_o to_o be_v embrace_v above_o all_o that_o be_v above_o all_o contrary_a object_n or_o objection_n and_o not_o to_o be_v alter_v upon_o any_o occasion_n supposition_n or_o authority_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n as_o s._n paul_n teach_v we_o by_o a_o impossible_a supposition_n to_o express_v the_o matter_n home_o galat_n 1.8_o although_o we_o or_o a_o angel_n from_o heaven_n evangelise_v to_o you_o beside_o that_o which_o we_o have_v evangelize_v to_o you_o be_v he_o anathema_n this_o admonition_n or_o denunciation_n of_o s._n paul_n must_v needs_o suppose_v christian_a faith_n to_o be_v above_o all_o probability_n for_o it_o be_v evident_o against_o reason_n to_o join_v together_o these_o two_o judgement_n or_o assertion_n this_o doctrine_n be_v only_o probable_a and_o ground_v only_o in_o probable_a and_o credible_a argument_n and_o yet_o that_o it_o be_v reasonable_a or_o necessary_a òr_n even_o possible_a to_o assent_v to_o it_o in_o such_o manner_n as_o never_o to_o believe_v the_o contrary_a though_o reason_n seem_v upon_o the_o best_a examination_n a_o man_n can_v make_v better_a than_o the_o former_a shall_v offer_v themselves_o against_o it_o see_v it_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o can_v be_v certain_a that_o better_a reason_n can_v possible_o be_v offer_v for_o if_o he_o be_v certain_a that_o better_a reason_n for_o the_o contrary_n be_v not_o possible_a his_o assent_n be_v not_o probable_a but_o certain_a therefore_o since_o we_o be_v not_o to_o forsake_v christian_a religion_n for_o whatsoever_o possible_a motive_n or_o reason_n or_o authority_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n we_o must_v give_v it_o absolute_a certainty_n and_o not_o only_a probability_n 22._o and_o because_o this_o kind_n of_o argument_n be_v of_o great_a moment_n than_o perhaps_o appear_v at_o first_o sight_n i_o will_v dilate_v it_o by_o say_v further_o that_o according_a to_o his_o assertion_n about_o the_o probability_n of_o faith_n no_o christian_a yea_o no_o man_n can_v be_v settle_v in_o any_o religion_n since_o he_o must_v be_v ready_a to_o change_v whensoever_o better_a reason_n shall_v be_v present_v against_o it_o neither_o can_v he_o be_v certain_a that_o he_o may_v not_o soon_o or_o late_a find_v some_o such_o reason_n for_o a_o faith_n only_o probable_a be_v a_o perpetual_a temptation_n to_o itself_o and_o we_o may_v true_o say_v accedens_fw-la tentator_n dicit_fw-la in_o the_o present_a tense_n see_v probability_n do_v not_o exclude_v some_o fear_n that_o the_o contrary_n may_v be_v true_a nay_o every_o consideration_n about_o faith_n to_o such_o man_n as_o chill_n who_o love_v to_o be_v esteem_v consider_v and_o discourse_v man_n be_v more_o than_o a_o temptation_n it_o be_v a_o yield_a or_o consent_v against_o faith_n involue_v this_o judgement_n perhaps_o that_o which_o i_o believe_v be_v false_a and_o the_o contrary_a true_a 23._o yea_o this_o vast_a absurdity_n do_v not_o only_o flow_v from_o this_o doctrine_n but_o it_o be_v in_o effect_n acknowledge_v by_o he_o in_o express_a word_n pag._n 380._o n._n 72._o where_o he_o deep_o tax_v all_o catholic_n because_o they_o either_o out_o of_o idleness_n refuse_v the_o trouble_n of_o a_o scuere_a trial_n of_o their_o religion_n or_o out_o of_o superstition_n fear_v the_o event_n of_o such_o a_o trial_n that_o they_o may_v be_v scruple_v and_o stagger_v and_o disquiet_v by_o it_o and_o therefore_o for_o the_o most_o part_n do_v it_o not_o at_o all_o or_o if_o they_o do_v it_o they_o do_v it_o without_o indifference_n without_o liberty_n of_o judgement_n without_o a_o resolution_n to_o leave_v it_o if_o it_o prove_v apparenty_o false_a my_o own_o experience_n assure_v i_o that_o in_o this_o imputation_n i_o do_v you_o catholic_n no_o injury_n but_o it_o be_v very_o apparent_a to_o all_o man_n from_o your_o rank_v doubt_v of_o any_o part_n of_o your_o doctrine_n among_o mortal_a sin_n for_o from_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o see_v every_o man_n must_v resolve_v he_o will_v never_o commit_v mortal_a sin_n that_o he_o must_v never_o examine_v the_o ground_n of_o it_o at_o all_o for_o stare_v he_o shall_v be_v move_v to_o doubt_v or_o if_o he_o do_v he_o must_v resolve_v that_o no_o motive_n be_v they_o never_o so_o strong_a shall_v move_v he_o to_o doubt_v but_o that_o with_o his_o will_n and_o resolution_n he_o will_v uphold_v himself_o in_o affirm_v belief_n of_o your_o religion_n do_v not_o it_o appear_v by_o these_o word_n that_o he_o must_v have_v no_o such_o resolution_n as_o he_o reprehend_v in_o we_o but_o must_v be_v ready_a to_o doubt_v or_o to_o leave_v his_o and_o all_o christian_a religion_n and_n pag._n 326._o
any_o thing_n contrary_a to_o any_o verity_n reveal_v in_o the_o word_n of_o god_n though_o never_o so_o improhable_a or_o incomprehensible_a to_o natural_a reason_n for_o if_o his_o faith_n be_v to_o his_o understanding_n only_o probable_a how_o can_v he_o in_o prudence_n prefer_v it_o before_o the_o contrary_a thereof_o which_o to_o his_o understanding_n seem_v evident_a and_o certain_a or_o how_o can_v a_o assent_n which_o i_o judge_v to_o be_v only_o probable_a enable_v i_o to_o believe_v that_o which_o i_o judge_v to_o be_v evident_o improbable_a and_o it_o be_v in_o vain_a for_o he_o to_o tell_v we_o of_o the_o certainty_n of_o god_n revelation_n since_o we_o do_v not_o compare_v natural_a reason_n with_o god_n revelation_n but_o with_o those_o motive_n for_o which_o we_o believe_v the_o divine_a revelation_n which_o be_v to_o he_o only_o probable_a and_o esteem_v such_o and_o no_o more_o must_v yield_v to_o appearance_n of_o certainty_n of_o the_o contrary_a and_o therefore_o he_o must_v either_o confess_v that_o he_o contradict_v himself_o or_o yield_v that_o faith_n be_v infallible_a and_o more_o certain_a than_o natural_a reason_n 30._o to_o speak_v truth_n if_o we_o consider_v well_o this_o socinian_n faith_n can_v have_v no_o other_o use_n or_o effect_n except_o only_o to_o damn_v man_n by_o content_v themselves_o with_o a_o faith_n of_o probability_n when_o they_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o attain_v a_o certainty_n he_o himself_o pag._n 36._o n._n 9_o doubt_n not_o but_o that_o the_o spirit_n of_o god_n be_v implore_v by_o devout_a and_o humble_a prayer_n and_o sincere_a obedience_n may_v and_o will_v by_o degree_n advance_v his_o servant_n high_a and_o give_v they_o a_o certainty_n of_o adherence_n beyond_o their_o certainty_n of_o evidence_n and_o those_o that_o believe_v and_o live_v according_a to_o their_o faith_n he_o give_v by_o degree_n the_o spirit_n of_o obsignation_n and_o confirmation_n which_o make_v they_o know_v though_o how_o they_o know_v not_o what_o they_o do_v but_o believe_v and_o to_o be_v as_o full_o and_o resolute_o assure_v of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n as_o those_o which_o hear_v it_o from_o christ_n himself_o with_o their_o ear_n which_o look_v upon_o it_o and_o who_o hand_n handle_v the_o word_n of_o life_n now_o if_o some_o man_n may_v arrive_v to_o so_o absolute_a a_o assurance_n why_o may_v not_o other_o why_o must_v not_o all_o be_v not_o all_o bound_n to_o live_v according_a to_o their_o faith_n and_o to_o observe_v the_o law_n of_o charity_n and_o obedience_n which_o do_v you_o say_v they_o shall_v arrive_v to_o a_o full_a and_o resolute_a assurance_n even_o above_o that_o which_o you_o call_v faith_n you_o say_v pag._n 227._o n._n 61._o god_n assistance_n be_v always_o ready_a to_o promote_v the_o church_n far_o on_o condition_n she_o do_v implore_v it_o and_o pag._n 175._o n._n 75._o you_o grant_v the_o spirit_n of_o truth_n shall_v be_v give_v and_o will_v abide_v with_o those_o that_o love_n god_n and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n yea_o since_o true_a faith_n be_v always_o the_o gift_n of_o god_n raise_v we_o up_o by_o grace_n above_o the_o strength_n of_o nature_n and_o that_o every_o one_o be_v oblige_v ro_o have_v true_a christian_a faith_n it_o be_v consequent_a that_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la all_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v with_o a_o faith_n produce_v by_o grace_n above_o the_o force_n of_o nature_n and_o consequent_o infallible_o certain_a for_o here_o that_o excellent_a say_n of_o s._n leo_n serm._n 16._o the_o pass_n domini_fw-la have_v place_n justè_fw-la deus_fw-la instat_fw-la praecepto_fw-la quia_fw-la praecurrit_fw-la auxilio_fw-la he_o may_v well_o exact_v of_o we_o a_o infallible_a act_n of_o faith_n see_v he_o give_v we_o sufficient_a grace_n to_o perform_v what_o he_o exact_v and_o pag._n 34._o n_o 6._o you_o say_v the_o essential_a character_n of_o charity_n be_v to_o judge_n and_o hope_v the_o best_a by_o which_o you_o be_v oblige_v to_o judge_n and_o hope_n unless_o the_o contrary_n be_v manifest_a that_o every_o one_o life_n according_a to_o his_o belief_n by_o observe_v the_o commandment_n and_o so_o in_o fact_n be_v arrive_v to_o a_o certain_a and_o infallible_a faith_n since_o therefore_o you_o grant_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o those_o who_o live_v according_a to_o their_o belief_n be_v not_o to_o be_v regulate_v by_o the_o law_n of_o logic_n and_o form_n of_o syllogism_n with_o what_o shadow_n of_o reason_n will_v you_o make_v man_n believe_v that_o the_o faith_n of_o all_o christian_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n which_o be_v a_o special_a infuse_a gift_n of_o god_n must_v be_v subject_a to_o such_o rule_n as_o if_o it_o be_v a_o mere_a conclusion_n follow_v only_o the_o weak_a of_o the_o premise_n and_o not_o measure_v by_o the_o special_a grace_n and_o motion_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n above_o all_o logic_n thus_o all_o your_o objection_n against_o the_o infallible_a faith_n of_o christian_n must_v be_v answer_v by_o yourself_o as_o false_a and_o sophistical_a and_o consequent_o all_o christian_n may_v and_o aught_o in_o despite_n of_o such_o paralogisme_n to_o assert_v and_o believe_v the_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a faith_n and_o as_o i_o say_v the_o contrary_a doctrine_n can_v serve_v only_o to_o delude_v and_o damn_v those_o unhappy_a soul_n who_o will_v be_v harkninge_v to_o such_o noveltye_n i_o say_v to_o damn_v soul_n even_o though_o it_o be_v false_o suppose_v that_o his_o doctrine_n be_v true_a for_o all_o christian_n beside_o this_o man_n and_o such_o as_o he_o sirme_o believe_v christian_a faith_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n to_o be_v infallible_o true_a and_o he_o acknowledge_v all_o point_n of_o christian_a faith_n to_o be_v but_o probable_a and_o sure_o he_o will_v not_o be_v so_o shameless_a as_o to_o say_v he_o believe_v this_o particular_a fancy_n wherein_o he_o disagree_v both_o from_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n to_o be_v more_o certain_a than_o all_o other_o article_n of_o faith_n it_o can_v be_v deny_v but_o that_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o believe_v with_o a_o infallible_a assent_n because_o as_o i_o sayda_o in_o matter_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n we_o be_v bind_v by_o the_o law_n of_o god_n and_o charity_n to_o ourselves_o to_o embrace_v the_o safe_a way_n by_o mean_n of_o a_o infallible_a faith_n which_o he_o confess_v may_v be_v obtain_v by_o prayer_n and_o obedience_n to_o god_n commandment_n and_o so_o upon_o one_o account_n or_o other_o all_o be_v oblige_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v with_o a_o infallible_a faith_n 31._o as_o it_o be_v very_o true_a that_o there_o be_v no_o great_a nor_o more_o foolish_a sin_n than_o the_o sin_n of_o desperation_n irrevocable_o bring_v damnation_n which_o may_v have_v be_v avoid_v by_o hope_n for_o which_o god_n grace_n be_v never_o want_v if_o we_o cooperate_v so_o we_o may_v say_v that_o this_o fallible_a faith_n infallible_o dispatch_v man_n to_o hell_n which_o mischief_n all_o may_v avoid_v by_o endeavour_v to_o raise_v their_o faith_n to_o certainty_n as_o he_o confess_v they_o may_v do_v by_o obey_v and_o pray_v which_o endeavour_n the_o grace_n of_o god_n put_v in_o their_o power_n and_o will_v and_o if_o they_o reject_v it_o to_o none_o more_o just_o then_o to_o this_o infortunate_a man_n and_o his_o fellow_n may_v be_v applyd_v these_o word_n of_o the_o prophet_n ezechiel_n c._n 18._o v._o 31.32_o why_o will_v you_o die_v return_n and_o live_v which_o that_o they_o may_v do_v either_o with_o more_o ease_n or_o become_v inexcusable_a if_o they_o do_v it_o not_o we_o will_v more_o and_o more_o confute_v that_o ground_n on_o which_o he_o do_v in_o a_o manner_n whole_o rely_v that_o the_o conclusion_n follow_v the_o weak_a of_o the_o premise_n one_o of_o which_o be_v in_o our_o case_n but_o probable_a the_o conclusion_n can_v be_v no_o more_o than_o probable_a 32._o for_o first_o i_o will_v for_o disputation_n sake_n ask_v of_o he_o whether_o he_o mean_v that_o the_o conclusion_n do_v so_o follow_v the_o weak_a of_o the_o premise_n that_o it_o receyve_v no_o strength_n or_o perfection_n from_o the_o fellowship_n of_o a_o better_a premise_v than_o itself_o be_v if_o he_o answer_v that_o it_o receyve_v no_o strength_n then_o one_o will_v infer_v that_o one_o premise_v contain_v the_o testimony_n or_o revelation_n of_o god_n a_o other_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n can_v produce_v no_o strong_a conclusion_n than_o if_o both_o premise_n do_v contain_v only_o the_o testimony_n of_o man_n and_o so_o he_o must_v confess_v that_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la he_o believe_v the_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n no_o more_o than_o if_o by_o probable_a argument_n they_o be_v prove_v to_o be_v testify_v by_o man_n alone_o if_o he_o answer_v that_o rhe_n strong_a premise_v may_v elevate_v the_o weak_a to_o produce_v a_o conclusion_n strong_a than_o
still_o go_v upon_o that_o ground_n that_o there_o be_v no_o degree_n of_o perfection_n in_o faith_n which_o i_o have_v demonstrate_v to_o be_v evident_o false_a and_o that_o all_o faith_n be_v of_o the_o same_o kind_n but_o not_o of_o the_o same_o degree_n beside_o that_o it_o have_v the_o imperfection_n of_o obseurity_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n do_v not_o so_o convince_v the_o understanding_n but_o that_o it_o may_v be_v resist_v and_o the_o contrary_n believe_v and_o therefore_o you_o can_v infer_v upon_o equality_n of_o faith_n in_o all_o true_a believer_n that_o our_o victory_n of_o the_o world_n must_v be_v equal_o perfect_a in_o all_o 60._o three_o if_o you_o have_v cite_v the_o testimony_n of_o s._n john_n as_o you_o ought_v the_o weakness_n and_o impertinency_n of_o your_o argument_n will_v have_v clear_o appear_v his_o word_n be_v 1._o joan_n 5._o v._o 3.4.5_o this_o be_v the_o charity_n of_o god_n that_o you_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o his_o commandment_n be_v not_o heavy_a because_o all_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n overcome_v the_o world_n and_o this_o be_v the_o victory_n that_o overcome_v the_o world_n our_o faith_n who_o be_v it_o that_o overcome_v the_o world_n but_o he_o that_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n where_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o s._n john_n speak_v of_o faith_n with_o charity_n which_o be_v call_v by_o divine_n fides_n formata_fw-la faith_n inform_v with_o charity_n by_o which_o we_o keep_v the_o commamdement_n as_o he_o say_v v._n 3._o this_o be_v the_o charity_n of_o god_n that_o you_o keep_v his_o commandment_n and_o v._n 4._o all_o that_o be_v bear_v of_o god_n overcome_v the_o world_n now_o we_o be_v bear_v or_o regenerate_v to_o a_o new_a life_n or_o be_v by_o justify_v grace_n and_o the_o gift_n which_o be_v give_v with_o it_o of_o faith_n hope_n and_o charity_n and_o therefore_o he_o add_v this_o be_v the_o victory_n which_o overcome_v the_o world_n our_o faith_n that_o be_v such_o a_o faith_n as_o the_o regenerate_v or_o they_o who_o receyve_v a_o new_a life_n have_v or_o a_o live_a faith_n work_v by_o charity_n 61._o four_o according_a to_o this_o true_a sense_n your_o objection_n be_v whole_o impertinent_a as_o speak_v of_o a_o naked_a faith_n take_v alone_o as_o it_o go_v before_o charity_n as_o like_o wise_a it_o do_v not_o prove_v that_o such_o a_o naked_a faith_n do_v necessary_o bring_v with_o it_o charity_n and_o so_o be_v the_o victory_n over_o the_o world_n for_o what_o consequence_n be_v it_o to_o say_v faith_n as_o inform_v with_o charity_n can_v be_v without_o charity_n or_o be_v the_o victory_n over_o the_o world_n therefore_o faith_n take_v by_o itself_o and_o consider_v only_o according_a to_o its_o own_o nature_n and_o essence_n and_o abstract_v from_o charity_n be_v inseparable_a from_o charity_n and_o the_o victory_n over_o the_o world_n a_o argument_n no_o better_a than_o this_o the_o body_n with_o the_o soul_n life_n and_o make_v a_o man_n therefore_o the_o body_n of_o itself_o live_v and_o make_v a_o man_n which_o be_v direct_o against_o s._n james_n c._n 2._o v._o 26._o say_n even_o as_o the_o body_n without_o the_o spirit_n be_v dead_a so_o also_o faith_n without_o work_n be_v dead_a this_o appear_v also_o by_o what_o s._n john_n say_v v._n 5._o who_o be_v he_o that_o overcome_v the_o world_n but_o he_o that_o believe_v that_o jesus_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n which_o must_v be_v understand_v of_o he_o who_o so_o believe_v in_o our_o saviour_n as_o that_o he_o love_v he_o and_o keep_v his_o commandment_n for_o mere_o to_o believe_v christ_n be_v the_o son_n of_o god_n be_v but_o that_o faith_n which_o protestant_n call_v historical_a and_o unanimous_o teach_v that_o it_o do_v not_o justify_v nor_o be_v inseparable_a from_o charity_n nor_o be_v the_o victory_n over_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o interpreter_n understand_v this_o text_n of_o a_o live_a faith_n or_o join_v with_o charity_n and_o so_o this_o place_n make_v against_o you_o and_o prove_v that_o faith_n of_o itself_o though_o never_o so_o infallible_a be_v not_o the_o victory_n over_o the_o world_n but_o the_o weakness_n of_o this_o man_n socinian_n probable_a faith_n force_v he_o to_o reel_v from_o faith_n to_o faith_n from_o historical_a to_o faith_n of_o work_a miracle_n from_o justify_v faith_n to_o historical_a from_o both_o to_o a_o no-faith_n that_o be_v to_o a_o faith_n so_o weak_a that_o by_o it_o a_o man_n may_v believe_v christian_a faith_n not_o to_o be_v true_a as_o we_o note_v against_o you_o by_o occasion_n of_o the_o text_n of_o s._n paul_n about_o receyve_v he_o who_o be_v weak_a in_o faith_n 62._o fist_o the_o whole_a force_n of_o your_o argument_n must_v rely_v upon_o the_o truth_n of_o this_o proposition_n whatsoever_o the_o understanding_n propose_v to_o the_o will_n with_o absolute_a certainty_n as_o a_o thing_n to_o be_v do_v the_o will_n can_v but_o follow_v the_o prescript_n of_o the_o understanding_n and_o therefore_o if_o christian_n faith_n be_v infallible_a certain_a our_o will_n must_v embrace_v what_o it_o propose_v and_o so_o overcome_v the_o world_n and_o sin_n and_o be_v perfect_a in_o charity_n which_o principle_n to_o be_v palpable_o false_a be_v evident_a by_o reason_n experience_n faith_n and_o by_o the_o doctrine_n of_o all_o protestant_n at_o least_o for_o as_o much_o as_o concern_v that_o kind_n of_o faith_n whereof_o we_o speak_v that_o be_v historical_a faith_n reason_n dictate_v that_o notwithstanding_o the_o certainty_n of_o faith_n the_o understanding_n may_v propose_v profitable_a and_o delightful_a object_n for_o these_o thing_n have_v no_o repugnance_n but_o do_v consist_v together_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o this_o object_n be_v honest_a and_o that_o the_o same_o object_n be_v unpleasant_a repugnant_a to_o sense_n honour_n profit_n &c_n &c_n and_o therefore_o the_o will_v place_v between_o these_o different_a motive_n the_o understanding_n which_o propose_v they_o all_o have_v no_o power_n to_o necessitate_v the_o will_n to_o any_o of_o they_o it_o be_v represent_v with_o as_o great_a certainty_n that_o such_o a_o object_n be_v difficult_a unpleasant_a or_o unprofitable_a as_o it_o appear_v honest_a and_o virtuous_a neither_o do_v certainty_n in_o the_o understanding_n necessitate_v we_o more_o to_o embrace_v it_o as_o honest_a than_o the_o like_a certainty_n do_v necessitate_v we_o to_o fly_v from_o it_o as_o unpleasant_a especial_o consider_v that_o faith_n be_v obscure_a and_o allure_a object_n be_v clear_a even_o to_o sense_n faith_n respect_v thing_n to_o come_v or_o else_o above_o the_o reach_n of_o our_o understanding_n humane_a objection_n and_o object_n be_v of_o thing_n present_a or_o not_o far_o of_o beside_o if_o certainty_n do_v impose_v a_o necessity_n it_o must_v follow_v that_o at_o the_o same_o time_n we_o must_v effectual_o embrace_v the_o same_o object_n as_o honest_a and_o fly_v from_o it_o as_o unpleasant_a which_o be_v impossible_a we_o must_v therefore_o say_v that_o it_o remain_v in_o the_o will_n to_o determine_v itself_o to_o which_o part_n it_o please_v have_v sufficient_a direction_n from_o the_o understanding_n for_o either_o side_n sin_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v divide_v into_o sin_n of_o ignorance_n and_o of_o knowledge_n that_o be_v commit_v by_o ignorance_n or_o with_o knowledge_n but_o now_o if_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o good_a necessitate_v our_o will_n to_o embrace_v it_o no_o sin_n can_v consist_v with_o certain_a knowledge_n of_o good_a and_o so_o all_o sin_n be_v sin_n of_o ignorance_n and_o that_o old_a distinction_n of_o philosopher_n and_o divine_n must_v be_v correct_v by_o this_o your_o new_a philosophy_n and_o divinity_n 63._o as_o for_o experience_n who_o know_v not_o or_o rather_o who_o teele_v not_o that_o vulgar_a say_n video_fw-la meliora_fw-la proboque_fw-la deteriora_fw-la sequor_fw-la i_o see_v that_o which_o be_v better_o and_o like_o it_o well_o but_o follow_v that_o which_o be_v worse_o 64._o last_o faith_n teach_v that_o we_o be_v endue_v with_o freewill_n which_o may_v embrace_v or_o reject_v what_o be_v propose_v by_o the_o understanding_n wherein_o all_o protestant_n for_o our_o present_a purpose_n agree_v with_o catholic_n both_o in_o regard_n that_o they_o yield_v freedom_n of_o will_n to_o angel_n and_o adam_n before_o their_o fall_n who_o yet_o believe_v by_o a_o infallible_a assent_n that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n and_o other_o mysterye_n reveal_v to_o they_o as_o also_o because_o they_o profess_v that_o historical_a faith_n and_o of_o that_o faith_n we_o speak_v do_v not_o justify_v nor_o infallible_o bring_v with_o it_o charity_n therefore_o it_o do_v not_o necessitate_v our_o will_n yea_o even_o those_o protestant_n who_o deny_v freewill_n hold_v not_o that_o the_o will_n be_v necessitate_v by_o the_o act_n of_o faith_n which_o direct_v but_o by_o the_o effectual_a
it_o to_o be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n he_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v a_o rule_n 95._o beside_o this_o you_o deliver_v another_o doctrine_n which_o overthrow_v the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n take_v alone_o thus_o you_o write_v p._n 144._o n._n 31._o the_o apostle_n doctrine_n be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n therefore_o it_o be_v entire_o true_a and_o in_o no_o part_n either_o false_a or_o uncertain_a i_o say_v in_o no_o part_n of_o that_o which_o they_o deliver_v constant_o as_o a_o certain_a divine_a truth_n and_o which_o have_v the_o attestation_n of_o divine_a miracle_n the_o falsehood_n and_o danger_n of_o this_o doctrine_n i_o will_v purposely_o confute_v hereafter_o for_o the_o present_a i_o say_v that_o it_o make_v scripture_n whole_o uncertain_a and_o unfit_a to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a yea_o or_o any_o rule_n of_o faith_n although_o it_o be_v never_o so_o clear_a and_o evident_a in_o all_o necessary_a point_n for_o if_o once_o we_o yield_v that_o the_o apostle_n can_v err_v in_o point_n belong_v to_o religion_n we_o can_v believe_v they_o with_o certainty_n at_o any_o other_o time_n or_o in_o any_o other_o article_n as_o i_o demonstrate_v in_o the_o next_o chapter_n and_o the_o thing_n be_v manifest_a of_o itself_o all_o divine_v and_o all_o man_n by_o the_o light_n of_o reason_n require_v a_o universal_a infallibility_n in_o that_o authority_n for_o which_o they_o must_v believe_v with_o divine_a faith_n and_o if_o it_o can_v err_v at_o one_o time_n it_o may_v err_v at_o another_o for_o aught_o we_o can_v know_v or_o if_o it_o say_v one_o thing_n to_o day_n and_o the_o contrary_a to_o morrow_n what_o certainty_n can_v we_o have_v to_o believe_v rather_o the_o one_o than_o the_o other_o and_o indeed_o we_o can_v believe_v neither_o of_o they_o with_o certainty_n beside_o you_o seem_v to_o require_v that_o every_o part_n of_o christian_a doctrine_n be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n beforwe_v can_v be_v certain_a of_o the_o truth_n thereof_o which_o blast_n the_o credit_n of_o all_o scripture_n for_o how_o do_v you_o know_v that_o the_o apostle_n wrought_v miracle_n to_o prove_v immediate_o and_o in_o particular_a that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o how_o can_v you_o believe_v that_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v several_o in_o confirmation_n of_o every_o rext_n of_o scripture_n and_o yet_o we_o believe_v every_o such_o text_n with_o a_o assent_n of_o divine_a faith_n nay_o whereas_o protestant_n allege_v some_o text_n to_o prove_v that_o scripture_n contain_v evident_o all_o necessary_a point_n you_o must_v show_v that_o those_o very_a text_n be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n if_o you_o will_v believe_v they_o with_o certainty_n as_o entire_o true_a which_o i_o suppose_v you_o will_v judge_n to_o be_v a_o chimericall_a endeavour_n and_o therefore_o we_o must_v infer_v that_o by_o no_o text_n of_o scripture_n you_o can_v prove_v it_o to_o contain_v all_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n divers_n other_o error_n you_o maintain_v against_o holy_a scripture_n which_o as_o in_o the_o next_o chapter_n i_o will_v demonstrate_v make_v it_o uncapable_a of_o be_v any_o rule_n at_o all_o for_o christian_a faith_n and_o therefore_o you_o must_v either_o retract_v those_o error_n or_o renounce_v the_o common_a principle_n of_o protestant_n that_o scripture_n alone_o contain_v evident_o all_o point_n necessary_o do_v to_o believe_v 96._o 19_o and_o last_o i_o overthrow_v theit_fw-ge sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n alone_o by_o not_o only_o answer_v but_o also_o confute_v the_o argument_n by_o which_o they_o endeavour_v to_o establish_v it_o for_o see_v it_o lie_v upon_o they_o positive_o to_o prove_v their_o assertion_n if_o it_o be_v demonstrate_v that_o the_o argument_n which_o they_o bring_v be_v either_o impertinent_a or_o insufficient_a it_o will_v remain_v effectual_o prove_v that_o they_o can_v avouch_v scripture_n alone_o to_o contain_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n i_o must_v therefore_o of_o necessity_n be_v large_a in_o answer_v their_o objection_n in_o perform_v whereof_o i_o both_o answer_n and_o impugn_v defend_v the_o truth_n and_o confute_v my_o adversary_n in_o one_o general_a point_n which_o alone_o imply_v or_o extend_v itself_o to_o all_o particular_a controversye_n in_o faith_n your_o 97._o first_o objection_n pag._n 109._o n._n 144._o be_v take_v from_o a_o say_n of_o bellarmin_n de_fw-la verb._n dei_fw-la l._n 4._o c._n 11._o that_o all_o those_o thing_n be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o all_o 98._o answer_n first_o bellarmin_n even_o as_o you_o allege_v he_o speak_v only_o of_o thing_n necessary_a for_o all_o that_o be_v for_o every_o private_a person_n not_o of_o thing_n necessary_a for_o the_o whole_a mystical_a body_n of_o the_o church_n as_o if_o all_o such_o thing_n be_v evident_o contain_v in_o scripture_n yea_o he_o express_o declare_v himself_o to_o the_o contrary_n §_o nota_fw-la secundo_fw-la affirm_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v wont_a to_o preach_v some_o thing_n only_o to_o prelate_n bishop_n and_o priest_n as_o of_o the_o manner_n of_o govern_v the_o church_n administer_a sacrament_n refute_v heretic_n &c_n &c_n second_o he_o say_v not_o that_o all_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a for_o all_o be_v writtren_n evident_o which_o only_o can_v serve_v your_o turn_n but_o only_o that_o they_o be_v write_v which_o be_v true_a though_o they_o be_v write_v obscure_o as_o many_o thing_n be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n in_o particular_a and_o yet_o obscure_o and_o much_o less_o do_v he_o say_v that_o they_o be_v evident_a without_o the_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n and_o help_v of_o tradition_n which_o only_o be_v for_o your_o purpose_n yea_o that_o his_o word_n can_v have_v no_o such_o meaning_n but_o the_o direct_a and_o express_v contrary_a bellarm_n himself_o will_v best_o declare_v in_o that_o very_a chapter_n from_o which_o your_o objection_n be_v take_v and_o almost_o immediate_o after_o the_o word_n by_o you_o cite_v thus_o he_o speak_v §_o sed_fw-la admissa_fw-la dico_fw-la eorum_fw-la omnium_fw-la dogmatum_fw-la &c_n &c_n i_o say_v that_o there_o be_v find_v in_o scripture_n testimony_n of_o all_o those_o doctrine_n which_o belong_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n and_o that_o we_o may_v concern_v such_o doctrine_n be_v full_o and_o plain_o instruct_v out_o of_o the_o scripture_n if_o we_o understand_v they_o aright_o but_o that_o sense_n of_o scripture_n depend_v on_o the_o unwritten_a tradition_n of_o the_o church_n wherefore_o theodoret_n l._n 1._o c._n 8._o relate_v that_o scripture_n be_v allege_v on_o both_o side_n both_o by_o catholic_n and_o arian_n and_o when_o the_o arian_n can_v not_o be_v convince_v by_o they_o scripture_n because_o they_o do_v expound_v those_o selfsame_o scripture_n otherwise_o than_o catholic_n do_v they_o be_v condemn_v by_o word_n not_o write_v but_o understand_v according_a to_o piety_n and_o no_o man_n ever_o doubt_v but_o that_o constantine_n consent_v to_o that_o condemnation_n can_v any_o thing_n have_v be_v speak_v more_o clear_o solid_o and_o true_o to_o show_v in_o what_o sense_n thing_n of_o great_a moment_n as_o be_v that_o article_n of_o the_o divinity_n of_o christ_n our_o lord_n against_o the_o wicked_a arian_n for_o defence_n whereof_o the_o church_n suffer_v so_o much_o and_o so_o many_o martyr_n shed_v their_o blood_n be_v contain_v full_o and_o plain_o in_o scripture_n that_o be_v in_o those_o text_n which_o full_o and_o plain_o recommend_v the_o church_n and_o unwritten_a tradition_n as_o i_o note_v in_o the_o beginning_n and_o yet_o further_o in_o the_o same_o lib._n 4._o cap._n 4._o §_o 7._o necesse_fw-la est_fw-la etc._n etc._n he_o say_v that_o oftentimes_o the_o scripture_n be_v doubtful_a and_o intricate_a so_o that_o it_o can_v be_v understand_v unless_o it_o be_v interpret_v by_o some_o who_o can_v err_v therefore_o it_o alone_o be_v not_o sufficient_a which_o be_v his_o express_a word_n and_o then_o give_v divers_a example_n of_o some_o chief_a point_n even_o belong_v to_o the_o nature_n of_o god_n which_o all_o good_a christian_n believe_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n and_o yet_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n alone_o and_o cap._n 7._o he_o say_v s._n austin_n say_v that_o that_o question_v whether_o they_o who_o be_v baptize_v by_o heretic_n be_v to_o be_v rebaptise_v can_v not_o be_v decide_v by_o scripture_n before_o a_o full_a council_n of_o the_o church_n but_o that_o after_o the_o council_n have_v declare_v the_o doubt_n and_o the_o whole_a question_n there_o may_v be_v take_v assure_a document_n from_o the_o scripture_n for_o scripture_n be_v explicate_v by_o the_o council_n do_v firm_o and_o certain_o prove_v that_o which_o they_o do_v not_o firm_o prove_v before_o but_o why_o do_v i_o stand_v upon_o particular_a passage_n since_o in_o the_o same_o lib._n 4._o cap._n 3_o he_o speak_v universal_o and_o say_v that_o we_o catholic_n disagree_v
ought_v you_o to_o determine_v the_o restriction_n without_o evident_a scripture_n which_o if_o you_o leave_v you_o can_v bring_v we_o no_o certainty_n for_o if_o you_o fly_v to_o reason_n alone_o your_o faith_n must_v float_v in_o uncertaintye_n for_o thing_n above_o reason_n and_o what_o certain_a reason_n can_v you_o give_v that_o s._n luke_n shall_v necessary_o set_v down_o all_o necessary_a point_n rather_o than_o s._n matthew_n and_o s._n mark_n who_o you_o only_o probable_o affirm_v to_o have_v write_v all_o thing_n necessary_a yea_o see_v those_o two_o evangelist_n write_v before_o s._n luke_n they_o shall_v rather_o have_v do_v it_o especial_o s._n matthew_n who_o write_v the_o gospel_n before_o the_o rest_n and_o so_o in_o reason_n it_o may_v seem_v more_o needful_a that_o he_o shall_v have_v write_v all_o necessary_a point_n if_o indeed_o your_o false_a doctrine_n be_v true_a that_o all_o necessary_a thing_n must_v be_v write_v in_o the_o mean_a time_n you_o must_v not_o confound_v principal_a and_o necessary_a thing_n as_o if_o universal_o they_o be_v all_o one_o some_o point_n may_v be_v in_o themselves_o principal_a and_o not_o necessary_a other_o necessary_a and_o yet_o in_o themselves_o not_o principal_a other_o both_o principal_a and_o necessary_a the_o manner_n of_o the_o existence_n of_o god_n identity_n with_o his_o attribute_n free_a decree_n infallible_a prenotion_n of_o all_o thing_n the_o proceed_n of_o one_o divine_a person_n from_o another_o and_o the_o like_a be_v in_o themselves_o and_o as_o they_o appear_v to_o angel_n and_o saint_n in_o the_o beatifical_a vision_n most_o principal_a object_n but_o for_o the_o manner_n which_o be_v also_o a_o most_o principal_a object_n be_v not_o universal_o necessary_a for_o all_o nor_o possible_a to_o be_v know_v in_o this_o mortal_a life_n contrary_o the_o matter_n and_o form_n of_o baptism_n and_o other_o sacrament_n and_o the_o like_a be_v not_o principal_a point_n in_o themselves_o or_o in_o their_o natural_a perfection_n and_o entity_n yet_o they_o be_v necessary_a to_o be_v know_v the_o conception_n of_o the_o son_n of_o god_n in_o the_o womb_n of_o the_o most_o b._n virgin_n by_o power_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n his_o nativity_n ascension_n and_o sit_v at_o the_o right_a hand_n of_o his_o father_n be_v article_n both_o principal_a and_o necessary_a and_o yet_o s._n mark_n who_o alone_o begin_v his_o gospel_n with_o these_o word_n the_o beginning_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n as_o part_v of_o scripture_n do_v not_o mention_v they_o and_o if_o one_o shall_v demand_v concern_v s._n mark_n as_o you_o do_v of_o the_o text_n of_o s._n luke_n whether_o his_o word_n the_o gospel_n of_o jesus_n christ_n must_v not_o at_o least_o imply_v all_o the_o principal_a and_o necessary_a thing_n which_o jesus_n begin_v to_o do_v and_o teach_v what_o will_v you_o answer_v whatsoever_o can_v be_v answer_v for_o s._n mark_n will_v serve_v for_o answer_v concern_v that_o text_n of_o s._n luke_n yea_o what_o will_v you_o answer_v even_o for_o s._n luke_n gospel_n wherein_o be_v omit_v the_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n which_o be_v a_o very_a principal_a and_o necessary_a article_n of_o christian_a religion_n can_v he_o say_v all_z assecuto_fw-la omne_fw-la that_o he_o have_v attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o all_o and_o yet_o omit_v a_o point_v so_o principal_a and_o necessary_a if_o so_o than_o you_o can_v by_o the_o particle_n all_o in_o the_o act_n understand_v all_o thing_n principal_a and_o necessary_a neither_o will_v it_o serve_v your_o turn_n to_o say_v that_o s._n luke_n make_v profession_n to_o deliver_v all_o thing_n which_o jesus_n begin_v to_o do_v and_o teach_v which_o the_o other_o evangelist_n do_v not_o profess_v for_o the_o sign_n all_o in_o s._n luke_n be_v not_o to_o be_v understand_v universal_o as_o i_o have_v often_o say_v and_o be_v clear_a out_o of_o s._n john_n cap._n 21._o it_o must_v admit_v some_o limitation_n and_o can_v signify_v no_o more_o than_o what_o all_o the_o evangelist_n do_v purpose_n and_o perform_v that_o be_v to_o deliver_v all_o thing_n which_o jesus_n begin_v to_o do_v and_o teach_v as_o far_o as_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o end_n which_o they_o intend_v according_a to_o the_o direction_n and_o inspiration_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n that_o all_o man_n shall_v be_v oblige_v to_o receive_v our_o saviour_n christ_n as_o the_o true_a messiah_n or_o else_o for_o confutation_n of_o some_o particular_a heresy_n or_o for_o prevention_n of_o false_a and_o sictious_a narration_n in_o which_o respect_n every_o one_o of_o the_o evangelist_n may_v have_v use_v the_o same_o word_n all_o as_o in_o deed_n they_o do_v full_o comply_v with_o the_o same_o duty_n which_o s._n luke_n perform_v which_o i_o confirm_v by_o the_o protestant_a translation_n anno_fw-la 1622._o saying_n in_o the_o preface_n to_o s._n luke_n gospel_n it_o seem_v good_a to_o i_o also_o have_v have_v perfect_a understanding_n of_o thing_n from_o the_o very_a first_o etc._n etc._n where_o there_o be_v not_o the_o word_n all_o and_o yet_o you_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o it_o be_v to_o be_v understand_v as_o if_o it_o be_v express_v and_o according_o the_o protestant_a translation_n or_o edition_n of_o the_o year_n 1593._o 1596._o 1602._o express_v that_o word_n it_o seem_v good_a also_o to_o i_o as_o soon_o as_o i_o have_v search_v out_o perfect_o all_o thing_n from_o the_o beginning_n and_o therefore_o all_o the_o evangelist_n as_o i_o say_v may_v have_v express_v all_o and_o must_v be_v understand_v in_o reality_n to_o write_v all_o no_o less_o then_o s._n luke_n who_o express_v so_o much_o 129._o but_o here_o occurr_v a_o difficulty_n which_o move_v i_o also_o to_o make_v this_o demand_n whether_o all_o in_o the_o preface_n to_o s._n luke_n gospel_n as_o soon_o as_o i_o have_v search_v out_o all_o thing_n from_o the_o beginning_n signify_v the_o same_o thing_n with_o all_o in_o his_o preface_n or_o entrance_n to_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o former_a treatise_n have_v i_o make_v of_o all_o that_o jesus_n begin_v to_o do_v and_o teach_v until_o the_o day_n in_o which_o he_o be_v take_v up_o you_o can_v say_v that_o they_o signify_v the_o same_o thing_n because_o it_o be_v certain_a that_o s._n luke_n have_v search_v out_o divers_a thing_n concern_v our_o b._n saviour_n which_o he_o do_v not_o commit_v to_o writing_n as_o for_o example_n those_o particular_n which_o be_v write_v by_o the_o other_o evangelist_n and_o not_o by_o he_o as_o also_o some_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o write_v by_o any_o therefore_o the_o word_n all_o in_o s._n luke_n must_v have_v a_o different_a signification_n when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o have_v search_v or_o have_v notice_n of_o all_o and_o when_o he_o say_v that_o he_o write_v all_o and_o so_o by_o all_o which_o even_o in_o these_o two_o text_n have_v a_o different_a signification_n you_o can_v possible_o learn_v that_o s._n luke_n write_v in_o his_o gospel_n all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o jesus_n begin_v to_o do_v and_o teach_v but_o you_o must_v do_v it_o out_o of_o some_o other_o text_n of_o scripture_n declare_v that_o he_o in_o the_o text_n of_o the_o act_n by_o all_o understand_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n though_o he_o understand_v much_o more_o by_o all_o in_o his_o preface_n before_o his_o gospel_n assecuto_fw-la omne_fw-la have_v understand_v all_o but_o no_o man_n in_o his_o wit_n will_v undertake_v any_o such_o task_n you_o demand_v 130._o 10_o whether_o this_o be_v not_o the_o very_a interpretat_fw-la ●on_n of_o your_o remish_a doctor_n in_o their_o annotation_n upon_o this_o place_n 131._o answer_n why_o make_v you_o not_o a_o conscience_n to_o deceive_v the_o reader_n by_o allege_v author_n against_o their_o know_a meaning_n but_o this_o show_n as_o i_o observe_v above_o how_o hard_o it_o be_v to_o find_v any_o write_n so_o clear_a that_o either_o by_o malice_n or_o mistake_v be_v not_o obnoxious_a to_o be_v misunderstand_v and_o cha_fw-mi ma_fw-fr who_o you_o egregious_o wrong_v in_o this_o kind_n and_o particular_o in_o father_v on_o he_o that_o which_o through_o his_o whole_a book_n he_o disprove_v and_o detest_v that_o a_o formal_a heretic_n may_v be_v save_v without_o relinquish_a his_o heresy_n may_v comfort_v himself_o with_o what_o that_o great_a dionysius_n corinthius_n as_o we_o find_v in_o eusebius_n l._n 4._o c._n 12_o hist_o eccles_n say_v what_o wonder_n be_v it_o if_o they_o have_v endeavour_v to_o falsify_v the_o word_n of_o holy_a scripture_n who_o have_v corrupt_v those_o mean_a thing_n which_o we_o have_v write_v you_o know_v that_o those_o most_o pious_a zealous_a and_o learned_a man_n who_o write_v the_o annotation_n upon_o the_o new_a testament_n firm_o believe_v and_o upon_o all_o
set_v down_o therefore_o we_o can_v gather_v pecise_o from_o the_o quality_n of_o the_o thing_n in_o themselves_o the_o necessity_n of_o their_o be_v set_v down_o in_o writing_n 137._o thus_o i_o hope_v your_o objection_n and_o demand_n set_v out_o with_o so_o great_a pomp_n and_o demonstration_n of_o some_o hide_a mystery_n only_o to_o amuse_v some_o unwary_a reader_n be_v answer_v and_o confute_v and_o demonstrate_v to_o beg_v the_o question_n and_o to_o contain_v either_o manifest_a falsehood_n or_o to_o be_v whole_o impertinent_a wherein_o i_o have_v stay_v the_o long_a because_o this_o argument_n take_v out_o of_o s._n luke_n be_v that_o whereon_o you_o most_o rely_v as_o also_o in_o regard_n that_o what_o i_o have_v say_v here_o will_v serve_v a_o fortiori_fw-la to_o answer_v the_o reason_n which_o you_o bring_v to_o prove_v that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o four_o evangelist_n have_v set_v down_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v though_o you_o think_v it_o most_o certain_a of_o s._n luke_n 138._o this_o you_o endeavour_v to_o prove_v pag_n 210._o n._n 40.41.42.43_o though_o n._n 40._o you_o say_v only_o that_o of_o all_o four_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a but_o of_o s._n luke_n most_o apparent_a and_o n._n 43_o it_o be_v very_o probable_a that_o every_o one_o of_o the_o four_o evangelist_n have_v in_o his_o book_n the_o whole_a substance_n all_o the_o necessary_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n but_o for_o s._n luke_n in_o my_o judgement_n it_o ought_v to_o be_v no_o manner_n of_o question_n now_o this_o doubtfulness_n be_v acknowledge_v by_o you_o and_o your_o conclusion_n pretend_v to_o be_v no_o more_o than_o probable_a your_o reason_n can_v be_v only_o probable_a and_o some_o topical_a congruitye_n and_o then_o i_o confute_v you_o with_o your_o own_o word_n pag_n 60._o n._n 21._o for_o end_v of_o civil_a controversye_n who_o do_v not_o see_v it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a that_o not_o only_a judge_n shall_v be_v appoint_v but_o that_o it_o shall_v be_v know_v and_o unquestioned_a who_o they_o be_v otherwise_o if_o it_o be_v a_o disputable_a thing_n who_o be_v these_o judge_n and_o they_o have_v no_o certain_a warrant_n for_o their_o authority_n but_o only_o some_o topical_a congruitye_n will_v not_o any_o man_n say_v such_o judge_n in_o all_o likelihood_n will_v rather_o multiply_v controversye_n than_o end_v they_o if_o this_o be_v true_a how_o will_v you_o have_v we_o in_o matter_n of_o eternity_n and_o of_o infinite_o high_a concernment_n than_o civil_a controversye_n take_v for_o a_o rule_n or_o as_o protestant_n speak_v a_o judge_n every_o one_o of_o the_o four_o gospel_n since_o according_a to_o your_o own_o axiom_n it_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a that_o it_o shall_v be_v know_v and_o unquestioned_a that_o they_o be_v such_o otherwise_o if_o it_o be_v a_o disputable_a thing_n whether_o they_o be_v judge_n and_o we_o have_v no_o certain_a warrant_n for_o their_o authority_n but_o only_o some_o topical_a congruitye_n will_v not_o any_o man_n say_v such_o judge_n in_o all_o likelihood_n will_v rather_o multiply_v controversye_n than_o end_v they_o beside_o christian_a faith_n must_v rely_v not_o upon_o probable_a but_o on_o some_o infallible_a and_o undoubted_a authority_n which_o that_o rule_n or_o judge_n can_v pretend_v who_o authority_n they_o who_o be_v to_o be_v try_v by_o it_o and_o who_o appeal_v to_o it_o direct_o acknowledge_v not_o to_o be_v such_o morover_n see_v protestant_n hold_v that_o scripture_n be_v not_o only_o the_o rule_n but_o the_o only_a rule_n of_o faith_n topical_a argument_n or_o congruitye_n which_o in_o other_o matter_n may_v be_v of_o some_o weight_n can_v be_v of_o no_o force_n with_o they_o in_o this_o our_o case_n and_o therefore_o your_o endeavour_n be_v in_o vain_a unless_o you_o bring_v some_o text_n yea_o and_o some_o evident_a text_n of_o scripture_n to_o prove_v this_o tenet_n which_o since_o you_o do_v not_o as_o will_v appear_v your_o argument_n and_o have_v be_v confess_v by_o yourself_o i_o may_v well_o reject_v all_o your_o proof_n draw_v only_o from_o humane_a reason_n as_o insufficient_a and_o impertinent_a without_o any_o other_o particular_a answer_n yet_o that_o it_o may_v appear_v how_o weak_a your_o proof_n be_v i_o will_v examine_v every_o one_o in_o particular_a and_o i_o believe_v they_o will_v be_v find_v no_o better_a than_o a_o perpetual_a beg_n of_o the_o question_n and_o to_o prove_v nothing_o unless_o you_o presuppose_v that_o all_o necessary_a point_n must_v be_v particular_o set_v down_o in_o holy_a scripture_n and_o that_o although_o you_o seem_v to_o multiply_v argument_n yet_o indeed_o you_o do_v but_o repeete_v the_o same_o to_o wit_n that_o no_o reason_n can_v be_v imagine_v that_o any_o of_o the_o evangelist_n shall_v omit_v any_o thing_n necessary_a and_o the_o like_a conjecture_n of_o your_o own_o 139._o that_o this_o may_v appear_v more_o clear_o let_v we_o propose_v three_o proposition_n first_o the_o doctrine_n of_o catholic_n that_o scripture_n take_v alone_o contain_v not_o particular_o and_o evident_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n then_o that_o it_o be_v doubtful_a whether_o or_o no_o scripture_n contain_v all_o such_o necessary_a point_n three_o that_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n be_v particular_o and_o evident_o contain_v in_o scripture_n as_o the_o protestant_n hold_v this_o be_v premise_v i_o hope_v to_o demonstrate_v that_o every_o one_o of_o your_o argument_n must_v either_o beg_v the_o question_n or_o at_o least_o prove_v nothing_o 140._o pag_n 210._o n._n 40._o you_o say_v what_o reason_n can_v be_v imagine_v that_o any_o of_o they_o shall_v leave_v ou●_n any_o thing_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v necessary_a and_o yet_o put_v in_o many_o thing_n as_o apparent_o all_o of_o they_o have_v do_v which_o they_o know_v to_o be_v only_o profitable_a and_o not_o necessary_a what_o wise_a and_o honest_a man_n that_o be_v now_o to_o write_v the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n will_v do_v so_o great_a a_o work_n of_o god_n after_o such_o a_o negligent_a fashion_n 141._o answer_n first_o let_v we_o apply_v to_o this_o your_o objection_n the_o three_o proposition_n i_o mention_v first_o than_o catholic_n believe_v that_o all_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n be_v not_o express_o and_o evident_o contain_v in_o scripture_n therefore_o no_o reason_n can_v be_v imagine_v that_o any_o of_o the_o evangelist_n have_v leave_v out_o any_o thing_n which_o he_o know_v to_o be_v necessary_a yourself_o will_v not_o approve_v of_o this_o consequence_n but_o we_o must_v say_v the_o contraty_n therefore_o we_o can_v have_v no_o reason_n to_o believe_v that_o they_o be_v oblige_v to_o do_v so_o it_o not_o be_v a_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v do_v by_o they_o or_o any_o canonical_a writer_n and_o to_o retort_v your_o own_o word_n what_o reason_n can_v be_v imagine_v to_o oblige_v they_o thereto_o therefore_o unless_o you_o express_o presuppose_v our_o doctrine_n all_o thing_n necessary_a be_v not_o evident_o contain_v in_o scrip_n ture_n to_o be_v false_a and_o your_o contrary_a assertion_n true_a your_o argument_n have_v no_o force_n and_o what_o be_v this_o but_o still_o to_o be_v beg_v the_o question_n do_v you_o not_o know_v that_o according_a to_o the_o rule_n of_o logic_n the_o disputant_n must_v prove_v and_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o defendant_n to_o stand_v to_o his_o conclusion_n till_o you_o can_v remove_v he_o from_o it_o by_o force_n of_o argument_n and_o yet_o for_o the_o present_a i_o need_v not_o make_v use_n of_o this_o right_n but_o only_o abstract_n from_o the_o truth_n or_o falsehood_n of_o our_o most_o true_a doctrine_n in_o this_o matter_n and_o therefore_o second_o let_v we_o suppose_v it_o to_o be_v doubtful_a whether_o all_o thing_n necessary_a be_v contain_v in_o the_o whole_a bible_n in_o this_o case_n it_o must_v remain_v much_o more_o doubtful_a and_o so_o not_o so_o much_o as_o probable_a but_o only_o by_o imagination_n whether_o every_o one_o of_o the_o evangelist_n have_v set_v down_o all_o such_o thing_n for_o it_o may_v be_v suppose_v not_o to_o be_v do_v by_o every_o one_o but_o by_o all_o of_o they_o or_o by_o all_o the_o canonical_a writer_n collectiuè_fw-fr as_o it_o be_v the_o common_a opinion_n of_o protestant_n who_o therefore_o must_v sol●e_v your_o objection_n no_o less_o than_o we_o catholic_n 3._o although_o we_o suppose_v your_o false_a doctrine_n about_o the_o sufficiency_n of_o scripture_n alone_o to_o be_v positive_o true_a and_o noton_o doubtful_a yet_o you_o can_v only_o infer_v from_o thence_o that_o all_o necessary_a point_n must_v be_v contain_v in_o the_o whole_a bible_n as_o other_o protestant_n teach_v but_o you_o can_v gather_v that_o they_o must_v be_v contain_v in_o all_o and_o much_o less_o in_o every_o one_o of_o the_o gospelss_o contrary_o unless_o you_o
allege_v some_o passage_n of_o the_o old_a and_o by_o allege_v they_o to_o a_o certain_a purpose_n they_o interpret_v and_o declare_v they_o to_o signify_v that_o for_o which_o they_o allege_v they_o be_v not_o always_o so_o clear_a in_o every_o respect_n as_o that_o they_o may_v not_o require_v some_o interpretation_n or_o explication_n as_o we_o see_v perform_v by_o holy_a father_n and_o interpreter_n of_o scripture_n who_o sometime_o find_v difficulty_n even_o in_o find_v in_o the_o old_a testament_n what_o be_v cite_v out_o of_o it_o and_o we_o have_v hear_v out_o of_o a_o protestant_a doctor_n that_o the_o apostle_n and_o divine_a writer_n bring_v the_o same_o testimony_n to_o divers_a purpose_n which_o show_v that_o every_o interpretation_n do_v not_o adequate_a the_o sense_n yea_o since_o some_o protestant_n hold_v that_o the_o same_o text_n of_o scripture_n can_v admit_v several_a true_a and_o different_a sense_n as_o fulk_n in_o his_o confutation_n of_o purgatory_n pag_n 151._o and_o willet_n in_o his_o synopsis_n pag_n 26._o they_o must_v aknowledg_v great_a difficulty_n in_o the_o interpretation_n of_o the_o same_o place_n to_o ●●vers_a purpose_n as_o divine_a writer_n have_v do_v and_o will_v be_v force_v to_o give_v some_o interpretation_n or_o declaration_n of_o those_o very_a different_a interpretation_n which_o canonical_a writer_n give_v of_o those_o text_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n thus_o your_o argument_n be_v clear_o confute_v i_o must_v put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o some_o point_n on_o which_o i_o believe_v you_o do_v not_o reflect_v and_o which_o will_v prove_v that_o it_o be_v not_o char_n main_n but_o yourself_o who_o give_v a_o thing_n with_o one_o hand_n and_o take_v it_o away_o with_o the_o other_o 186._o in_o your_o first_o answer_n to_o a_o objection_n which_o you_o make_v against_o yourself_o pag_n 55_o n._n 8._o you_o say_v god_n may_v give_v a_o writing_n the_o attestation_n of_o perpetual_a miracle_n that_o it_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o word_n of_o god_n this_o you_o give_v here_o and_o yet_o you_o take_v it_o away_o in_o your_o answer_n to_o your_o three_o motive_n to_o be_v a_o roman_a catholic_a where_o you_o say_v the_o bible_n have_v be_v confirm_v with_o those_o supernatural_a and_o divine_a meracy_n which_o be_v wrought_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o add_v it_o seem_v to_o i_o no_o strange_a thing_n that_o god_n in_o his_o justice_n shall_v permit_v sometrue_a miracle_n to_o be_v wrought_v to_o delude_v they_o who_o have_v forge_v so_o many_o as_o apparent_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o roman_a doctrine_n have_v to_o abuse_v the_o world_n the_o same_o you_o express_o deliver_v pag_n 379._o n._n 69_o now_o if_o even_o true_a miracle_n may_v be_v wrought_v to_o delude_v any_o sort_n of_o people_n certain_o they_o may_v have_v be_v wrought_v to_o delude_v the_o jew_n who_o despise_v and_o impugn_a the_o miracle_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o deny_v christ_n to_o be_v the_o true_a messiah_n and_o forge_v false_a witness_n to_o put_v he_o to_o death_n and_o discredit_v his_o doctrine_n nay_o what_o people_n or_o what_o single_a person_n can_v be_v sure_a that_o their_o sin_n have_v not_o deserve_v such_o a_o punishment_n every_o deadly_a sin_n unrepented_a will_v certain_o be_v punish_v with_o eternal_a torment_n which_o be_v the_o great_a evil_n that_o can_v be_v imagine_v or_o rather_o so_o great_a that_o it_o can_v be_v imagine_v by_o any_o mortal_a man_n and_o therefore_o much_o more_o may_v every_o such_o sin_n be_v just_o punish_v by_o permit_v true_a miracle_n to_o be_v wrought_v to_o delude_v the_o sinner_n if_o once_o that_o be_v grant_v which_o you_o affirm_v how_o then_o can_v our_o saviour_n say_v john_n 10.38_o if_o you_o will_v not_o believe_v i_o believe_v the_o work_n or_o do_v not_o this_o open_a a_o way_n to_o affirm_v that_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n have_v be_v wrought_v to_o delude_v man_n and_o final_o to_o come_v close_o to_o our_o purpose_n how_o can_v god_n give_v any_o certain_a attestation_n by_o any_o miracle_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n if_o true_a miracle_n may_v be_v do_v to_o delude_v man_n and_o how_o do_v you_o say_v in_o your_o answer_n to_o your_o say_a three_o motive_n to_o be_v a_o roman_a catholic_a the_o bible_n de_fw-fr facto_fw-la have_v be_v confirm_v with_o those_o supernatural_a and_o divine_a miracle_n which_o be_v wrought_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n be_v not_o this_o with_o one_o hand_n to_o give_v scripture_n the_o prerogative_n of_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o with_o the_o other_o to_o take_v it_o away_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n i_o challenge_v all_o the_o enemy_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n to_o show_v any_o one_o miracle-forged_n and_o approve_a by_o she_o and_o yourself_o know_v that_o she_o censure_v with_o excommunication_n broacher_n of_o false_a miracle_n as_o charity_n maintain_v part_n 1_o chap._n 3._o n._n 9_o show_v and_o you_o in_o your_o answer_n deny_v it_o not_o it_o be_v notorious_a to_o the_o whole_a world_n that_o such_o forger_n be_v most_o severe_o punish_v in_o catholic_a country_n 187._o in_o another_o respect_n also_o you_o give_v and_o take_v away_o here_o you_o tell_v we_o that_o god_n may_v give_v scripture_n the_o attestation_n of_o perpetual_a miracle_n that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o in_o your_o answer_n to_o your_o three_o motive_n as_o i_o say_v even_o now_o you_o say_v that_o the_o scripture_n have_v be_v confirm_v with_o those_o innumerous_a supernatural_a and_o divine_a miracle_n which_o be_v wrought_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n if_o this_o be_v so_o we_o must_v infer_v that_o as_o the_o particular_a content_n of_o scripture_n for_o example_n the_o incarnation_n life_n death_n resurtection_n and_o ascension_n of_o our_o saviour_n christ_n &c_n &c_n be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n become_v material_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n so_o see_v you_o confess_v this_o truth_n the_o bible_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n to_o be_v prove_v by_o the_o miracle_n of_o christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n it_o follow_v evident_o that_o it_o be_v a_o material_a object_n of_o faith_n no_o less_o than_o the_o particular_a truth_n which_o it_o contain_v andthis_n yourself_o affirm_v in_o this_o very_a place_n in_o your_o second_o answer_n where_o you_o say_v by_o scripture_n not_o all_o thing_n absolute_o may_v be_v prove_v which_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v for_o it_o can_v never_o be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n to_o a_o gainsayer_n that_o there_o be_v a_o god_n or_o that_o the_o book_n call_v scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n be_v not_o this_o to_o say_v that_o one_o of_o the_o thing_n which_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o scripture_n and_o yet_o be_v to_o be_v believe_v be_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n therefore_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o be_v a_o material_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n this_o i_o say_v you_o teach_v here_o but_o in_o other_o place_n you_o affirm_v and_o take_v care_n to_o prove_v that_o scripture_n be_v not_o one_o of_o the_o material_a object_n of_o our_o faith_n as_o shall_v appear_v in_o my_o next_o chapter_n 188._o you_o do_v also_o overthrow_v what_o we_o have_v hear_v you_o say_v that_o miracle_n may_v be_v wrought_v to_o delude_v man_n by_o the_o contrary_a doctrine_n deliver_v pag_n 144._o n._n 31._o in_o these_o word_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o god_n shall_v lie_v and_o that_o the_o eternal_a truth_n shall_v set_v his_o hand_n and_o seal_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o a_o falsehood_n or_o of_o such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v partly_o true_a and_o partly_o false_a the_o apostle_n doctrine_n be_v thus_o confirm_v therefore_o it_o be_v entire_o true_a and_o in_o no_o part_n either_o false_a or_o uncertain_a but_o how_o be_v this_o true_a if_o the_o apostle_n may_v have_v be_v permit_v to_o work_v even_o true_a miracle_n to_o delude_v man_n or_o how_o be_v not_o their_o doctrine_n uncertain_a if_o you_o can_v be_v certain_a but_o that_o their_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v to_o such_o a_o end_n of_o delude_a man_n how_o many_o way_n be_v you_o fall_v into_o that_o which_o you_o object_v to_o your_o adversary_n as_o direct_v boyes-play_a giving_z take_v away_o say_v unsay_n and_o in_o a_o word_n contradict_v yourself_o not_o in_o any_o by-point_n or_o incident_a speech_n as_o that_o be_v which_o without_o reason_n you_o tax_v in_o charity_n m●●tayned_v but_o in_o a_o matter_n of_o great_a moment_n as_o be_v the_o certainty_n and_o belief_n of_o holy_a scripture_n one_o of_o the_o prime_a object_n of_o christian_a faith_n 189._o i_o know_v not_o
contain_v something_o against_o scripture_n for_o example_n whether_o according_a to_o the_o example_n of_o our_o saviour_n the_o eucharist_n be_v not_o to_o be_v celebrate_v after_o supper_n or_o at_o the_o time_n when_o we_o be_v wont_v to_o sup_v as_o protestant_n common_o call_v it_o the_o supper_n which_o certain_o you_o can_v avoid_v by_o scripture_n alone_o but_o only_o by_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n which_o practise_v the_o contrary_a and_o this_o be_v so_o great_a a_o doubt_n that_o januarius_n consult_v s._n austin_n about_o it_o and_o s._n austin_n answer_v that_o we_o be_v to_o follow_v the_o custom_n of_o church_n though_o yet_o in_o the_o same_o epistle_n cap._n 7._o he_o say_v nonnullos_fw-la probabilis_fw-la quaedam_fw-la ratio_fw-la etc._n etc._n some_o be_v move_v with_o a_o probable_a reason_n that_o upon_o one_o particular_a day_n in_o the_o year_n on_o which_o our_o lord_n give_v the_o supper_n the_o body_n and_o blood_n of_o our_o lord_n may_v be_v offer_v and_o receyve_v after_o meat_n as_o it_o be_v for_o a_o more_o remarkable_a commemoration_n the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o wash_v the_o foot_n and_o other_o circumstance_n which_o abstract_v from_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o church_n you_o can_v have_v no_o certainty_n but_o that_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o follow_v our_o saviour_n example_n in_o they_o all_o and_o in_o particular_a for_o wash_v of_o foot_n our_o saviour_n joan._n 13._o v._o 8._o say_v to_o s._n peter_n if_o i_o wash_v thou_o not_o thou_o shall_v have_v no_o part_n with_o i_o and_o v._o 14._o you_o also_o aught_o to_o wash_v one_o another_o foot_n mark_v the_o word_n ought_v which_o may_v seem_v to_o sound_v a_o command_n and_o be_v speak_v not_o only_o to_o s._n peter_n but_o to_o all_o the_o rest_n therefore_o unless_o we_o rely_v on_o the_o church_n practice_n declaration_n and_o infallibility_n we_o must_v say_v that_o there_o be_v a_o command_n to_o wash_v foot_n either_o before_o we_o receyve_v the_o eucharist_n or_o else_o absolute_o without_o relation_n to_o that_o sacrament_n because_o our_o saviour_n say_v absolute_o you_o ought_v to_o wash_v one_o a_o other_o foot_n morover_n how_o will_v you_o assure_v we_o that_o bread_n for_o the_o matter_n of_o consecration_n must_v not_o of_o necessity_n be_v unleavened_a and_o the_o wine_n only_o of_o that_o kind_n which_o our_o saviour_n use_v at_o that_o time_n or_o if_o you_o may_v consecrate_v in_o any_o kind_n of_o wine_n why_o not_o in_o any_o kind_n of_o bread_n which_o be_v thing_n belong_v not_o only_a to_o decency_n or_o circumstance_n but_o also_o to_o the_o substance_n of_o the_o sacrament_n and_o though_o they_o belong_v only_o to_o circumstance_n yet_o if_o they_o be_v forbid_v or_o command_v in_o scripture_n the_o do_v or_o omission_n of_o they_o be_v damnable_a therefore_o s._n austin_n must_v suppose_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n can_v err_v neither_o can_v he_o be_v think_v to_o say_v these_o thing_n be_v not_o unlawful_a but_o indifferent_a therefore_o it_o be_v madness_n to_o dispute_v against_o they_o if_o they_o be_v practise_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n but_o contrary_o he_o must_v say_v the_o whole_a church_n practise_v they_o therefore_o they_o be_v lawful_a and_o it_o be_v madness_n to_o dispute_v against_o they_o which_o be_v not_o so_o if_o the_o whole_a church_n may_v err_v neither_o have_v he_o say_v any_o more_o of_o the_o universal_a than_o of_o any_o particular_a church_n which_o ought_v not_o to_o be_v disturb_v for_o thing_n indifferent_a as_o you_o ibid._n pag._n 151._o n._n 42._o deny_v not_o but_o it_o may_v be_v esteemend_v pride_n and_o folly_n to_o contradict_v and_o disturb_v the_o church_n for_o matter_n of_o order_n pertain_v to_o the_o time_n and_o place_n and_o other_o circomstance_n of_o god_n worship_n and_o yet_o s._n austin_n in_o that_o epistle_n cap._n 2._o have_v first_o mention_v thing_n contain_v in_o scripture_n add_v these_o word_n but_o those_o thing_n which_o we_o keep_v not_o as_o write_v but_o by_o tradition_n if_o they_o be_v observe_v through_o the_o whole_a world_n be_v understand_v to_o be_v keep_v as_o recommend_v and_o ordain_v either_o by_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o or_o by_o general_a counsel_n who_o authority_n be_v most_o wholesome_a in_o the_o church_n and_o have_v give_v example_n of_o thing_n which_o be_v different_o observe_v in_o different_a place_n and_o country_n say_v this_o kind_n of_o thing_n be_v free_o observe_v neither_o be_v there_o any_o better_a order_n for_o a_o grave_n and_o prudent_a christian_a then_o that_o he_o do_v as_o he_o see_v do_v in_o that_o church_n to_o which_o he_o chance_v to_o come_v and_o afterward_o he_o disallow_v their_o proceed_n who_o be_v cause_n of_o disturbance_n for_o thing_n which_o can_v be_v decide_v neither_o by_o the_o authority_n of_o holy_a scripture_n nor_o by_o tradition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n therefore_o according_a to_o s._n austin_n if_o once_o we_o have_v a_o tradition_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n we_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o defend_v it_o without_o further_a dispute_n and_o to_o impugn_v and_o reject_v whatsoever_o practice_n or_o doctrine_n of_o any_o particular_a church_n or_o country_n though_o it_o may_v seem_v to_o be_v occasion_n of_o trouble_n which_o we_o can_v not_o do_v without_o pride_n and_o folly_n unless_o we_o be_v assure_v that_o the_o universal_a church_n can_v approve_v any_o unlawful_a practice_n or_o deliver_v any_o thing_n against_o faith_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v cap._n 4._o that_o he_o who_o allege_v only_o the_o custom_n of_o his_o particular_a country_n will_v not_o speak_v out_o of_o scripture_n neither_o will_v he_o take_v his_o proof_n from_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n dilate_v through_o the_o world_n where_o we_o see_v s._n austin_n make_v a_o difference_n between_o a_o particular_a and_o universal_a church_n and_o constant_o join_v together_o the_o holy_a scripture_n and_o the_o voice_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n either_o of_o which_o whosoever_o can_v allege_v he_o may_v confident_o stand_v for_o what_o they_o deliver_v and_o for_o this_o cause_n cap._n 5._o he_o say_v that_o januarius_n to_o who_o he_o write_v be_v to_o consider_v whether_o that_o of_o which_o there_o be_v question_n be_v contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o be_v unanimous_o practise_v by_o the_o whole_a church_n or_o of_o the_o three_o kind_n which_o be_v different_a in_o divers_a place_n and_o country_n of_o which_o three_o kind_n he_o say_v let_v every_o one_o do_v what_o he_o find_v in_o that_o church_n where_o he_o fynd_n himself_o but_o of_o the_o two_o first_o kind_n he_o speak_v as_o i_o note_v above_o in_o another_o manner_n that_o there_o be_v no_o doubt_n but_o that_o we_o be_v to_o do_v what_o the_o holy_a scripture_n prescribe_v as_o also_o whatsoever_o the_o universal_a church_n do_v practice_v and_o that_o to_o dispute_v against_o any_o such_o thing_n be_v most_o insolent_a madness_n what_o can_v have_v be_v speak_v more_o clear_a to_o show_v that_o we_o be_v not_o to_o follow_v the_o universal_a church_n because_o we_o judge_v aforehand_o that_o what_o she_o practise_v be_v lawful_a but_o because_o we_o learn_v by_o her_o practice_n that_o it_o be_v lawful_a and_o so_o ought_v not_o to_o doubt_v quin_fw-la ita_fw-la faciendum_fw-la sit_fw-la that_o be_v aught_o to_o be_v so_o do_v and_o so_o we_o must_v learn_v of_o she_o both_o the_o practice_n and_o the_o lawfulness_n thereof_o and_o consequent_o whatsoever_o be_v against_o scripture_n or_o the_o practice_n of_o the_o universal_a church_n must_v not_o be_v rank_v among_o the_o three_o kind_n of_o thing_n of_o which_o he_o say_v none_o of_o those_o thing_n be_v against_o faith_n or_o manner_n and_o contrary_o whatsoever_o be_v of_o the_o two_o first_o kind_n that_o be_v against_o scripture_n or_o the_o universal_a church_n must_v be_v esteem_v to_o be_v of_o a_o different_a nature_n and_o contrary_a to_o faith_n or_o manner_n and_o therefore_o say_v he_o velemendari_fw-la opportet_fw-la quod_fw-la perperam_fw-la fiebat_fw-la vel_fw-la institui_fw-la quod_fw-la non_fw-la fiebat_fw-la either_o that_o must_v be_v mend_v which_o be_v do_v amiss_o or_o that_o be_v to_o be_v ordain_v which_o be_v omit_v and_o therefore_o your_o say_n here_o that_o it_o be_v not_o to_o be_v account_v pride_n or_o folly_n to_o go_v about_o to_o reform_v some_o error_n which_o the_o church_n have_v suffer_v to_o come_v in_o and_o to_o vitiate_v thereby_o the_o substance_n of_o god_n worship_n be_v direct_o against_o s_n austin_n and_o you_o can_v avoid_v the_o crime_n of_o schism_n by_o part_v from_o the_o church_n upon_o such_o false_a pretence_n nor_o of_o heresy_n even_o by_o this_o most_o pernicious_a doctrine_n that_o the_o universal_a church_n may_v err_v 210._o from_o these_o place_n of_o s._n austin_n and_o what_o we_o have_v say_v
the_o same_o time_n in_o th●_n same_o circumstance_n necessary_a to_o be_v beliey_v out_o of_o which_o word_n it_o follow_v that_o see_v one_o can_v at_o no_o time_n disbelieve_v or_o dissent_v from_o that_o for_o which_o he_o have_v the_o same_o reason_n in_o virtue_n whereof_o he_o believe_v another_o thing_n he_o must_v necessary_o believe_v it_o according_a to_o your_o doctrine_n second_o if_o we_o believe_v a_o thing_n mere_o for_o some_o humane_a or_o natural_a reason_n you_o will_v not_o i_o believe_v be_v able_a to_o show_v that_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v any_o one_o thing_n and_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v another_o for_o which_o we_o have_v the_o same_o reason_n for_o if_o the_o command_n be_v only_o this_o that_o reason_n oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v that_o which_o in_o reason_n deserve_v belief_n the_o reason_n be_v equal_a the_o necessity_n of_o believe_v must_v be_v equal_a but_o if_o the_o command_n of_o believe_v be_v supernatural_a or_o some_o positive_a divine_a precept_n than_o this_o must_v be_v notify_v to_o we_o by_o revelation_n and_o so_o there_o will_v not_o be_v the_o same_o reason_n for_o both_o but_o as_o different_a as_o be_v between_o humane_a reason_n and_o divine_a revelation_n and_o therefore_o three_o if_o i_o have_v the_o same_o reason_n of_o divine_a revelation_n to_o believe_v both_o there_o be_v always_o a_o equal_a necessity_n for_o the_o belief_n of_o those_o thing_n for_o the_o belief_n whereof_o there_o be_v that_o equal_a reason_n of_o divine_a revelation_n and_o so_o your_o subtlety_n that_o there_o be_v not_o always_o a_o equal_a necessity_n for_o the_o belief_n of_o those_o thing_n for_o the_o belief_n whereof_o &c_n &c_n be_v against_o reason_n against_o yourself_o and_o against_o all_o divinity_n 11._o i_o have_v no_o time_n to_o loose_v in_o examine_v your_o say_n if_o any_o man_n shall_v doubt_v or_o disbelieve_v that_o there_o be_v such_o a_o man_n as_o henry_n the_o eight_o king_n of_o england_n it_o be_v most_o unreasonable_o do_v of_o he_o yet_o it_o be_v no_o mortal_a sin_n nor_o sin_n at_o all_o god_n have_v no_o where_n command_v man_n underpayne_n of_o damnation_n to_o believe_v all_o which_o reason_n induce_v they_o to_o believe_v yet_o perhaps_o some_o will_v ask_v whether_o you_o suppose_v that_o he_o who_o in_o the_o example_n you_o give_v so_o doubt_n or_o disbelieve_v do_v it_o vincible_o or_o invincible_o if_o invincible_o then_o in_o he_o it_o be_v not_o unreasonable_a because_o he_o in_o such_o circumstance_n can_v judge_v no_o otherwise_o and_o so_o in_o he_o it_o be_v reasonable_a for_o it_o fall_v out_o often_o that_o a_o true_a judgement_n may_v be_v imprudent_a and_o unreasonable_a if_o it_o be_v frame_v light_o and_o for_o insufficient_a reason_n and_o contrary_o one_o may_v judge_v amiss_o for_o the_o material_a truth_n in_o itself_o and_o yet_o judge_v prudent_o if_o he_o be_v move_v by_o probable_a reason_n and_o so_o a_o true_a judgement_n may_v be_v rash_a and_o a_o false_a one_o prudent_a but_o if_o he_o who_o so_o doubt_n be_v suppose_v to_o err_v vincible_o you_o will_v not_o easy_o excuse_v he_o from_o all_o fault_n for_o example_n of_o pertinacy_n and_o obstinacy_n of_o judgement_n against_o all_o wise_a man_n or_o precipitation_n or_o imprudency_n or_o at_o least_o from_o a_o idle_a thought_n in_o his_o extravagant_a unreasonable_a false_a and_o foolish_a belief_n which_o sure_o can_v be_v of_o no_o solid_a profit_n for_o himself_o or_o other_o or_o for_o the_o glory_n of_o god_n and_o you_o know_v our_o b._n saviour_n have_v reveal_v that_o every_o idle_a word_n be_v a_o sin_n but_o whatsoever_o be_v say_v of_o your_o doctrine_n take_v in_o general_a that_o god_n have_v no_o where_o command_v man_n to_o believe_v all_o which_o reason_n induce_v they_o to_o believe_v yet_o i_o leave_v it_o to_o be_v consider_v whethert_n he_o particular_a example_n which_o you_o give_v may_v not_o seem_v in_o itself_o to_o imply_v something_o of_o the_o dangerous_a for_o if_o it_o be_v no_o sin_n at_o all_o to_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v never_o any_o such_o man_n as_o henry_n the_o eight_o and_o i_o suppose_v you_o will_v say_v the_o same_o of_o other_o like_a example_n of_o king_n prince_n commonwealth_n and_o magistrate_n some_o perhaps_o will_v infer_v that_o if_o your_o doctrine_n be_v true_a it_o can_v be_v no_o sin_n at_o all_o to_o believe_v that_o they_o have_v no_o lawful_a successor_n see_v no_o body_n can_v succeed_v to_o a_o chimaera_n or_o to_o a_o nobody_n or_o a_o nonentity_n as_o you_o say_v king_n henry_n may_v be_v without_o sin_n believe_v to_o have_v be_v 12_o but_o at_o least_o your_o friend_n will_v think_v you_o have_v speak_v subtle_o and_o to_o the_o purpose_n in_o your_o other_o reason_n or_o example_n that_o as_o a_o executor_n that_o shall_v perform_v the_o whole_a will_n of_o the_o dead_a shall_v full_o satisfy_v the_o law_n though_o he_o do_v not_o believe_v that_o parchment_n to_o be_v his_o write_a will_n which_o indeed_o be_v so_o so_o i_o believe_v that_o he_o who_o believe_v all_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n which_o integrate_a christianity_n and_o live_v according_a to_o they_o shall_v be_v save_v though_o he_o neither_o believe_v nor_o know_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v write_v by_o the_o evangelist_n nor_o the_o epistle_n by_o the_o apostle_n yet_o in_o this_o also_o you_o either_o err_v against_o truth_n or_o overthrow_v your_o own_o main_a cause_n for_o if_o such_o a_o executor_n do_v not_o believe_v that_o parchment_n to_o be_v the_o dead_a man_n write_a will_n and_o have_v no_o other_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o believe_v the_o content_n to_o be_v his_o will_n he_o shall_v neither_o satisfy_v the_o law_n which_o give_v he_o no_o power_n but_o in_o virtue_n of_o the_o dead_a man_n will_n nor_o his_o own_o conscience_n but_o shall_v usurp_v the_o office_n without_o any_o authority_n and_o expose_v himself_o to_o danger_n of_o commit_v great_a injustice_n by_o dispose_v the_o good_n of_o the_o dead_a against_o his_o meaning_n and_o deprive_v of_o their_o right_n those_o to_o who_o for_o aught_o he_o know_v they_o be_v bequeath_v by_o the_o true_a will_n of_o the_o party_n decease_v now_o apply_v this_o your_o case_n to_o our_o present_a question_n and_o the_o result_n will_v be_v that_o see_v according_a to_o protestant_n de_fw-la facto_fw-la we_o know_v the_o content_n of_o scripture_n and_o the_o will_n and_o command_n of_o god_n deliver_v therein_o only_o by_o scripture_n itself_o and_o by_o no_o other_o mean_n of_o tradition_n or_o declaration_n of_o the_o church_n if_o one_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o scripture_n he_o can_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v all_o or_o any_o of_o the_o particular_a doctrine_n which_o integrate_a christianity_n nor_o can_v judge_v himself_o oblige_v to_o live_v according_a to_o they_o nor_o can_v any_o man_n without_o injury_n deprive_v man_n of_o the_o liberty_n which_o they_o possess_v by_o impose_v upon_o their_o conscience_n such_o a_o obligation_n 13._o and_o here_o i_o must_v not_o omit_v your_o say_n that_o a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v though_o he_o shall_v not_o know_v or_o not_o bel●●ue_v the_o scripture_n to_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n no_o nor_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n where_o you_o distinguish_v between_o be_v a_o rule_n of_o faith_n and_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n whereas_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o nothing_o can_v be_v a_o rule_n of_o christian_a faith_n except_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n because_o christian_a faith_n as_o i_o say_v have_v for_o its_o formal_a object_n the_o divine_a revelation_n or_o word_n of_o god_n and_o nothing_o which_o be_v not_o such_o can_v be_v a_o rule_n of_o our_o faith_n d._n potter_n pag_n 143._o say_v the_o chief_a principle_n or_o ground_n on_o which_o faith_n rest_v and_o for_o which_o it_o formal_o assent_v unto_o those_o truth_n which_o the_o church_n propound_v be_v divine_a revelation_n make_v in_o the_o scripture_n nothing_o less_o than_o this_o nothing_o but_o th●s_n can_v erect_v or_o qualify_v a_o act_n of_o supernatural_a faith_n which_o must_v be_v absolute_o undoubted_a and_o certain_a in_o which_o word_n although_o he_o err_v against_o truth_n in_o say_v that_o the_o divine_a revelation_n on_o which_o faith_n must_v rest_v must_v be_v make_v in_o scripture_n see_v god_n word_n or_o revelation_n be_v the_o same_o whether_o it_o be_v write_v or_o unwritten_a yet_o even_o in_o that_o error_n he_o show_v himself_o to_o be_v against_o your_o error_n that_o one_o may_v believe_v or_o reject_v scripture_n in_o which_o alone_a divine_a revelation_n be_v make_v according_a to_o he_o and_o so_o take_v away_o scripture_n or_o the_o belief_n of_o they_o all_o revelation_n and_o faith_n must_v be_v take_v away_o and_o he_o declare_v
deliver_v by_o word_n or_o writing_n and_o therefore_o can_v without_o damnation_n be_v reject_v by_o any_o to_o who_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v for_o such_o which_o sufficiency_n of_o proposition_n be_v require_v in_o all_o article_n of_o faith_n fundamental_a or_o not_o fundamental_a before_o one_o can_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v they_o 27_o since_o then_o according_a to_o your_o doctrine_n we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v scripture_n to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n yea_o and_o may_v reject_v it_o it_o remain_v true_a then_o as_o i_o say_v in_o the_o last_o chapter_n scripture_n can_v be_v a_o perfect_a rule_n nor_o any_o rule_n at_o all_o of_o faith_n although_o we_o shall_v false_o suppose_v that_o it_o contain_v evident_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v for_o what_o can_v it_o avail_v i_o in_o order_n to_o the_o exercise_v a_o act_n of_o faith_n to_o read_v any_o point_n in_o that_o book_n which_o i_o conceive_v myself_o not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v let_v we_o now_o come_v to_o another_o error_n of_o you_o 28._o your_o second_o error_n i_o find_v pag._n 144._o n._n 31._o where_o you_o write_v thus_o if_o you_o be_v so_o infallible_a as_o the_o apostle_n be_v show_v it_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v they_o go_v forth_o say_v s._n mark_v and_o preach_v every_o where_o the_o lord_n work_v with_o they_o and_o confirm_v their_o word_n with_o sign_n follow_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o god_n shall_v lie_v and_o that_o the_o eternal_a truth_n shall_v set_v his_o hand_n and_o seal_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o a_o falsehood_n or_o of_o such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v partly_o true_a and_o partly_o false_a the_o apostle_n doctrine_n be_v thus_o confirm_v therefore_o it_o be_v entire_o true_a and_o in_o no_o part_n either_o false_a or_o uncertain_a i_o say_v in_o no_o part_n of_o that_o which_o they_o deliver_v constant_o as_o a_o certain_a divine_a truth_n and_o which_o have_v the_o attestation_n of_o divine_a miracle_n for_o that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o even_o after_o the_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v and_o through_o inadvertence_n or_o prejudice_n continue_v for_o a_o time_n in_o error_n repugnant_a to_o a_o reveal_v truth_n it_o be_v unanswerable_o evident_a from_o the_o story_n of_o the_o act_n of_o the_o apostle_n for_o notwithstanding_o our_o saviour_n express_a warrant_n and_o injunction_n to_o go_v and_o preach_v to_o all_o nation_n yet_o until_o s._n peter_n be_v better_o inform_v by_o a_o vision_n from_o heaven_n and_o by_o the_o conversion_n of_o cornelius_n both_z h_z o_o and_o the_o rest_n of_o the_o church_n hold_v be_v unlawful_a for_o they_o to_o go_v or_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o any_o but_o the_o jew_n and_o pag._n 145._o n._n 33._o you_o say_v the_o apostle_n can_v not_o be_v the_o church_n foundation_n without_o freedom_n from_o error_n in_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o deliver_v constant_o as_o certain_a reveal_v truth_n do_v not_o these_o word_n overthrow_n christian_n religion_n and_o authority_n of_o scripture_n 29._o these_o condition_n you_o require_v that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v to_o we_o certain_a and_o receyve_v as_o divine_a truth_n 1._o it_o must_v be_v deliver_v constant_o 2_o it_o must_v be_v deliver_v as_o a_o divine_a truth_n 3._o it_o must_v have_v the_o artestation_n of_o divine_a miracle_n and_o these_o condition_n you_o require_v for_o every_o part_n thereof_o for_o you_o say_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v false_a or_o uncertain_a in_o no_o part_n and_o then_o you_o add_v express_o this_o limitation_n i_o say_v in_o no_o part_n of_o that_o which_o they_o deliver_v constant_o as_o a_o certain_a divine_a truth_n and_o which_o have_v the_o artestation_n of_o divine_a maracy_n you_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o the_o apostle_n if_o they_o conceyve_v that_o the_o gospel_n be_v not_o to_o be_v preach_v to_o the_o gentill_n do_v frame_v that_o opinion_n out_o of_o some_o apprehend_a revelation_n for_o example_n in_o viam_fw-la gentium_fw-la ne_fw-la abieritis_fw-la matth_n 10.5_o into_o the_o way_n of_o the_o gentile_n go_v you_o not_o or_o matth_n 15.24_o i_o be_v not_o send_v but_o to_o the_o sheep_n that_o be_v lose_v of_o the_o house_n of_o israel_n or_o some_o other_o and_o so_o deliver_v a_o thing_n conceyve_v by_o they_o to_o be_v a_o divine_a truth_n yet_o they_o be_v deceyve_v in_o that_o point_v because_o it_o want_v the_o other_o condition_n of_o constancy_n and_o attestation_n of_o divine_a miracle_n and_o consequent_o your_o doctrine_n must_v be_v that_o every_o point_n of_o faith_n must_v have_v all_o the_o say_v three_o condition_n and_o that_o the_o apostle_n after_o the_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n may_v fail_v in_o some_o of_o they_o and_o may_v teach_v a_o error_n in_o deliver_v matter_n concern_v faith_n and_o religion_n 30._o if_o this_o be_v so_o what_o certainty_n can_v we_o now_o have_v that_o they_o on_o who_o christian_n be_v build_v as_o upon_o their_o foundation_n ephes_n 2.20_o have_v not_o err_v in_o writing_n as_o than_o they_o err_v in_o speak_v and_o in_o particular_a whether_o they_o do_v not_o err_v in_o set_v down_o that_o very_a command_n which_o pag_n 137._o n._n 21._o you_o cite_v out_o of_o s._n matth_n 29.19_o go_v and_o teach_v all_o nation_n and_o so_o at_o this_o present_a we_o can_v be_v certain_a whether_o the_o apostle_n err_v in_o their_o first_o thought_n of_o not_o preach_v or_o in_o their_o second_o of_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o gentile_n if_o they_o be_v universal_o assist_v by_o the_o holy_a ghost_n they_o can_v err_v in_o neither_o without_o it_o in_o both_o and_o if_o once_o you_o deny_v such_o a_o universal_a assistance_n we_o can_v possible_o know_v when_o they_o be_v to_o be_v trust_v and_o how_o can_v you_o be_v certain_a that_o s._n luke_n have_v not_o err_v in_o declare_v this_o very_a story_n out_o of_o which_o you_o will_v prove_v that_o s._n peter_n and_o the_o other_o apostle_n do_v err_v you_o grant_v pag_n 35._o n._n 7._o that_o the_o mean_n to_o decide_v controversye_n in_o faith_n and_o religion_n must_v be_v endue_v with_o a_o universal_a infallibility_n in_o whatsoever_o it_o propound_v for_o a_o divine_a truth_n for_o if_o it_o may_v be_v false_a in_o any_o one_o thing_n of_o this_o nature_n in_o any_o thing_n which_o god_n require_v man_n to_o believe_v we_o can_v yield_v unto_o it_o but_o a_o waver_a and_o fearful_a assent_n in_o any_o thing_n see_v therefore_o you_o teach_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v deceive_v in_o a_o thing_n which_o god_n require_v they_o to_o believe_v and_o command_v they_o to_o practice_v according_a to_o your_o own_o say_n we_o can_v yield_v unto_o they_o but_o a_o waver_a and_o fearful_a assent_n in_o any_o thing_n what_o the_o apostle_n speak_v or_o preach_v they_o may_v have_v write_v it_o be_v your_o own_o say_n pag_n 54._o n._n 7._o whatsoever_o be_v deliver_v by_o word_n of_o mouth_n may_v also_o be_v write_v neither_o have_v it_o be_v more_o or_o less_o true_a or_o false_a by_o be_v commit_v to_o writing_n than_o if_o it_o have_v be_v only_o speak_v or_o preach_v and_o so_o if_o they_o can_v err_v in_o speak_v we_o can_v be_v sure_o but_o that_o their_o writing_n may_v contain_v some_o error_n proceed_v from_o inadvertence_n or_o prejudice_n or_o some_o other_o cause_n as_o you_o speak_v pag_n 137._o n._n 21._o this_o i_o may_v confirm_v by_o what_o you_o say_v to_z ch_z ma_n pag_n 84.86_o d._n field_n word_n i_o confess_v be_v somewhat_o more_o press_v and_o if_o he_o have_v be_v infallible_a and_o the_o word_n have_v not_o slip_v unadvised_o from_o he_o they_o be_v the_o best_a argument_n in_o your_o book_n in_o which_o word_n i_o note_v that_o although_o d._n field_n have_v be_v infallible_a yet_o word_n may_v have_v slip_v from_o he_o unadvised_o even_o in_o writing_n for_o you_o speak_v of_o what_o he_o have_v write_v in_o his_o book_n and_o therefore_o much_o more_o if_o the_o apostle_n be_v suppose_v to_o have_v be_v fallible_a and_o actual_o to_o have_v err_v as_o you_o say_v they_o do_v why_o may_v not_o their_o error_n have_v unadvised_o slip_v from_o they_o into_o their_o writing_n 31._o if_o you_o answer_v that_o it_o belong_v to_o god_n providence_n not_o to_o permit_v a_o error_n to_o be_v set_v down_o in_o writing_n and_o convey_v to_o posterity_n i_o reply_v by_o this_o very_a reason_n it_o be_v clear_a that_o god_n can_v not_o permit_v the_o apostle_n to_o err_v against_o any_o reveal_v truth_n and_o yet_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v with_o certainty_n their_o writing_n which_o we_o can_v believe_v only_o for_o the_o authority_n and_o infallibility_n of_o the_o writer_n especial_o since_o you_o pretend_v that_o this_o error_n of_o they_o be_v
also_o transmit_v to_o posterity_n by_o be_v record_v by_o s._n luke_n who_o you_o allege_v and_o so_o if_o your_o false_a assertion_n be_v true_a we_o be_v as_o sure_o that_o they_o hold_v a_o error_n as_o that_o they_o deliver_v any_o truth_n because_o we_o believe_v both_o by_o the_o same_o authority_n of_o scripture_n yea_o according_o to_o your_o doctrine_n relate_v above_o we_o be_v not_o oblige_v to_o believe_v that_o scripture_n itself_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v the_o truth_n deliver_v therein_o one_o of_o which_o you_o affirm_v to_o be_v that_o the_o apostle_n do_v err_v and_o therefore_o we_o must_v believe_v that_o they_o err_v and_o yet_o may_v deny_v the_o authority_n of_o scripture_n which_o relate_v that_o error_n god_n i_o say_v can_v in_o his_o holy_a providence_n be_v contrary_a to_o himself_o and_o oblige_v we_o to_o believe_v with_o certainty_n the_o writing_n of_o those_o who_o we_o believe_v to_o have_v err_v and_o yet_o for_o who_o infallibility_n we_o believe_v those_o very_a writing_n to_o be_v infallible_a for_o the_o apostle_n be_v not_o infallible_a because_o they_o write_v scripture_n but_o we_o believe_v scripture_n to_o be_v infallible_a because_o it_o be_v write_v by_o the_o apostle_n who_o by_o divine_a mean_n even_o before_o they_o write_v any_o scripture_n immediate_a prove_v themselves_o to_o be_v infallible_a and_o worthy_a of_o all_o credit_n and_o so_o mediate_v those_o same_o mean_n prove_v their_o writing_n to_o be_v divine_a and_o infallible_a we_o can_v not_o believe_v any_o book_n to_o be_v canonical_a if_o we_o do_v think_v it_o deliver_v any_o one_o point_n contrary_a to_o some_o other_o part_n of_o the_o scripture_n and_o how_o can_v we_o certain_o believe_v the_o apostle_n in_o other_o matter_n of_o faith_n if_o we_o once_o yield_v they_o to_o have_v err_v and_o contradict_v truth_n in_o any_o one_o 32._o the_o second_o condition_n require_v by_o you_o for_o assure_v we_o that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v neither_o false_a nor_o uncertain_a be_v that_o it_o be_v deliver_v by_o they_o as_o a_o certain_a divine_a truth_n this_o also_o be_v a_o source_n of_o uncertaintye_n for_o scripture_n be_v not_o wont_a to_o declare_v express_o or_o as_o i_o may_v say_v in_o actu_fw-la signato_fw-la whether_o the_o writer_n thereof_o intend_v to_o deliver_v this_o or_o that_o as_o a_o certain_a divine_a truth_n and_o though_o they_o have_v do_v so_o yet_o if_o their_o infallibility_n be_v not_o universal_a we_o can_v not_o believe_v they_o with_o certainty_n in_o that_o declaration_n and_o if_o their_o infallibility_n be_v universal_a we_o must_v believe_v they_o though_o they_o use_v no_o such_o expression_n of_o a_o certain_a divine_a truth_n hitherto_o it_o have_v be_v believe_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o that_o all_o the_o veritye_n contain_v in_o it_o though_o otherwise_o they_o be_v but_o natural_a truth_n be_v reveal_v or_o testify_v by_o god_n and_o by_o that_o mean_n grow_v to_o be_v both_o certain_a and_o divine_a as_o invest_v with_o the_o supernatural_a divine_a testimony_n now_o if_o some_o thing_n be_v deliver_v in_o scripture_n as_o certain_a divine_a truth_n other_o not_o you_o make_v scripture_n a_fw-mi aggregate_v of_o different_a kind_n of_o truth_n without_o be_v able_a to_o give_v any_o infallible_a certain_a general_a rule_n and_o not_o only_o some_o probable_a conjecture_n of_o your_o own_o to_o know_v positive_o and_o certain_o when_o the_o scripture_n speak_v of_o one_o kind_n and_o when_o of_o another_o which_o yet_o in_o your_o ground_n be_v necessary_a for_o give_v we_o assurance_n whether_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v entire_o true_a and_o in_o no_o part_n false_a or_o uncertain_a for_o if_o that_o condition_n of_o deliver_v a_o certain_a divine_a truth_n do_v not_o subsist_v we_o have_v not_o a_o sufficient_a ground_n to_o exercise_v a_o act_n of_o divine_a faith_n and_o so_o we_o can_v be_v oblige_v to_o believe_v the_o content_n of_o scripture_n 33._o the_o three_o condition_n which_o you_o require_v for_o our_o assurance_n that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v entire_o true_a be_v that_o it_o have_v the_o attestation_n of_o divine_a miracle_n which_o either_o discredit_v the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o most_o of_o the_o ueritye_n contain_v in_o they_o or_o else_o confute_v your_o onwe_n doctrine_n that_o the_o apostle_n may_v err_v in_o matter_n belong_v to_o religion_n for_o if_o you_o mean_v that_o every_o particular_a truth_n which_o they_o preach_v must_v be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n you_o disoblige_v man_n from_o believe_v innumerable_a point_n of_o scripture_n for_o which_o we_o have_v no_o proof_n that_o they_o be_v so_o particular_o confirm_v yea_o we_o have_v no_o proof_n from_o scripture_n that_o the_o apostle_n do_v ever_o direct_o and_o immediate_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n that_o it_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n and_o yet_o upon_o this_o ground_n all_o the_o pretend_a religion_n of_o protestant_n that_o be_v the_o whole_a bible_n and_o truth_n contain_v therein_o depend_v if_o your_o meaning_n be_v only_o that_o it_o be_v sufficient_a for_o the_o belief_n of_o every_o particular_a truth_n which_o the_o apostle_n speak_v or_o write_v that_o by_o miracle_n sanctity_n of_o life_n and_o other_o undoubted_a argument_n they_o approve_a themselves_o as_o it_o be_v in_o general_a that_o they_o be_v worthy_a of_o credit_n in_o all_o matter_n belong_v to_o religion_n than_o you_o can_v maintain_v that_o s._n peter_n who_o wrought_v many_o miracle_n to_o prove_v himself_o a_o man_n send_v from_o and_o approve_v by_o god_n do_v err_v in_o that_o particular_a main_n article_n about_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o gentile_n or_o if_o he_o can_v err_v in_o that_o we_o can_v believe_v his_o word_n or_o write_v in_o many_o other_o point_v not_o confirm_v in_o particular_a by_o miracle_n the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o the_o other_o apostle_n preacher_n and_o canonical_a writer_n last_o i_o confute_v these_o your_o error_n by_o your_o own_o word_n pag._n 290._o n._n 88_o to_o speak_v proper_o not_o any_o set_v know_v company_n of_o man_n be_v secure_v that_o though_o they_o neglect_v the_o mean_n of_o avoid_v error_n yet_o certain_o they_o shall_v not_o err_v which_o be_v necessary_a for_o the_o constitution_n of_o a_o infallible_a guide_n of_o faith_n but_o you_o say_v pag._n 114._o n._n 155._o the_o apostle_n person_n while_o they_o be_v live_v be_v the_o only_a judge_n of_o controversy_n and_o pag._n 60._o n._n 17._o that_o none_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v judge_n but_o he_o that_o be_v infallible_a therefore_o according_a to_o you_o we_o must_v infer_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v secure_v not_o to_o err_v though_o they_o be_v suppose_v to_o neglect_v the_o mean_n of_o avoid_v error_n and_o consequent_o they_o neither_o do_v nor_o can_v err_v by_o inadvertence_n or_o prejudice_n or_o by_o any_o neglect_n of_o the_o mean_n to_o avoid_v error_n beside_o pag._n 146._o n._n 34._o you_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v lead_v into_o all_o truth_n by_o the_o spirit_n efficaciter_fw-la the_o church_n be_v lead_v also_o into_o all_o truth_n by_o the_o apostle_n writing_n sufficienter_fw-la how_o then_o can_v the_o apostle_n actual_o fall_v into_o any_o error_n see_v they_o be_v efficaciter_fw-la led_z into_o all_o truth_n and_o yet_o again_o you_o contradict_v yourself_o and_o say_v pag_n 177._o n._n 77._o you_o be_v the_o salt_n of_o the_o earth_n say_v our_o saviour_n to_o his_o disciple_n not_o that_o this_o quality_n be_v inseparable_a from_o their_o person_n but_o because_o it_o be_v their_o office_n to_o be_v so_o for_o if_o they_o must_v have_v be_v so_o of_o necessity_n and_o can_v not_o have_v be_v otherwise_o in_o vain_a have_v he_o put_v they_o in_o fear_n of_o that_o which_o follow_v if_o the_o salt_n have_v lose_v his_o savour_n etc._n etc._n if_o this_o be_v so_o what_o certainty_n can_v we_o have_v that_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la the_o apostle_n do_v not_o err_v see_v they_o may_v err_v 34._o your_o objection_n be_v easy_o answer_v s._n peter_n himself_o never_o doubt_v whether_o the_o gospel_n be_v to_o be_v preach_v to_o the_o gentile_n neither_o can_v any_o such_o thing_n be_v prove_v out_o of_o the_o 11._o and_o 12._o of_o the_o act_n as_o you_o pretend_v pag._n 137._o n._n 21._o the_o vision_n record_v in_o those_o chapter_n as_o exhibit_v to_o s._n peter_n be_v ordain_v to_o the_o satisfaction_n not_o of_o all_o christian_n but_o of_o convert_a jew_n who_o be_v offend_v with_o he_o for_o converse_v with_o gentile_n as_o be_v evident_a chap._n 11._o v._o 2.3_o they_o that_o be_v of_o the_o circumcision_n that_o be_v jew_n make_v christian_n reason_v against_o he_o say_v why_o do_v thou_o enter_v into_o man_n uncircumcised_a
your_o fly_v to_o such_o poor_a sign_n as_o these_o be_v be_v to_o i_o a_o great_a sign_n that_o you_o labour_v with_o penury_n of_o better_a argument_n and_o that_o thus_o to_o catch_v at_o shadow_n and_o bulrush_n be_v a_o shrewd_a sign_n of_o a_o sink_a cause_n 59_o answer_v what_o great_a sign_n of_o particular_a assistance_n and_o as_o it_o be_v a_o determination_n to_o truth_n from_o some_o high_a cause_n than_o consent_n and_o constancy_n of_o many_o therein_o while_o we_o see_v other_o change_n alter_v and_o contradict_v one_o another_o and_o even_o the_o same_o man_n become_v contrary_a to_o himself_o who_o yet_o in_o all_o other_o humane_a respect_n have_v the_o same_o occasion_n ability_n and_o reason_n of_o such_o consent_n and_o constancy_n tertullian_n prescript_n chap_n 28._o say_v true_o among_o many_o event_n there_o be_v not_o one_o issue_n the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n must_v needs_o have_v vary_v but_o that_o which_o among_o many_o be_v find_v to_o be_v one_o be_v not_o mistake_v but_o deliver_v and_o the_o experience_n we_o have_v of_o the_o many_o great_a and_o endless_a difference_n of_o protestant_n about_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n and_o interpretation_n thereof_o be_v a_o very_a great_a argument_n that_o the_o church_n which_o never_o alter_v nor_o disagree_v from_o herself_o be_v guide_v by_o a_o superior_a infallible_a divine_a spirit_n as_o christian_n among_o other_o inducement_n to_o believe_v that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n allege_v the_o perfect_a coherence_n of_o one_o part_n thereof_o with_o another_o 60._o before_o i_o pass_v to_o your_o next_o error_n i_o must_v ask_v a_o question_n about_o what_o you_o deliver_v pag_n 141._o n._n 28._o where_o speak_v of_o some_o book_n of_o scripture_n you_o say_v see_v after_o the_o apostle_n the_o church_n pretend_v to_o no_o new_a revelation_n how_o can_v it_o be_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n to_o believe_v they_o canoncall_a and_o pag_n 142._o n._n 29._o if_o they_o some_o certain_a book_n of_o scripture_n be_v approve_v by_o the_o apostle_n this_o i_o hope_v be_v a_o sufficient_a definition_n how_o i_o say_v you_o who_o hold_v that_o scripture_n be_v not_o a_o point_n of_o faith_n nor_o reveal_v by_o god_n can_v say_v that_o to_o propose_v book_n of_o scripture_n though_o they_o have_v be_v propose_v before_o be_v to_o propose_v new_a revelation_n or_o definition_n of_o the_o apostle_n but_o as_o i_o say_v heretofore_o it_o be_v no_o news_n for_o you_o to_o utter_v contradiction_n 61._o a_o seven_o error_n plain_o destructive_a both_o of_o scripture_n and_o all_o christianity_n be_v take_v out_o of_o your_o doctrine_n of_o which_o i_o have_v speak_v heretofore_o that_o the_o bible_n be_v prove_v to_o be_v divine_a by_o those_o miracle_n which_o be_v wrought_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o yet_o that_o god_n may_v permit_v true_a miracle_n to_o be_v wrought_v to_o delude_v man_n which_o assertion_n put_v together_o may_v give_v occasion_n to_o doubt_n whether_o those_o miracle_n whereby_o the_o scriptute_fw-la be_v confirm_v be_v not_o to_o delude_v man_n and_o so_o we_o can_v have_v no_o certainty_n that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n 62._o to_o this_o i_o will_v add_v a_o doctrine_n of_o you_o deliver_v pag_n 69._o n._n 47._o which_o overthrow_v all_o proof_n that_o can_v be_v take_v from_o miracle_n for_o confirmation_n either_o that_o scripture_n be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n or_o that_o other_o article_n of_o christian_a faith_n be_v true_a thus_o you_o write_v for_o my_o part_n i_o profess_v if_o the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o as_o good_a and_o as_o sit_v to_o come_v from_o the_o fountain_n of_o goodness_n as_o the_o miracle_n by_o which_o it_o be_v confirm_v be_v great_a i_o shall_v want_v one_o main_a pillar_n for_o my_o faith_n and_o for_o want_v of_o it_o i_o fear_v shall_v be_v much_o stagger_v in_o it_o do_v not_o this_o assertion_n declare_v that_o true_a miracle_n be_v in_o sufficient_a of_o themselves_o to_o convince_v that_o a_o thing_n confirm_v by_o they_o be_v true_a or_o good_a unless_o man_n do_v also_o interpose_v their_o own_o judgement_n that_o the_o thing_n in_o themselves_o be_v such_o which_o be_v not_o to_o believe_v the_o miracle_n or_o god_n speak_v and_o testify_v by_o they_o but_o to_o subject_v the_o testimony_n of_o god_n to_o the_o judgement_n of_o man_n whereas_o contrary_o we_o ought_v to_o judge_v such_o thing_n to_o be_v good_a because_o they_o be_v so_o testify_v and_o not_o believe_v that_o testimony_n to_o be_v true_a because_o in_o our_o judgement_n independent_o of_o that_o testimony_n the_o thing_n be_v good_a in_o themselves_o which_o be_v to_o vary_v our_o belief_n of_o god_n testimony_n according_a as_o we_o may_v chance_v to_o alter_v our_o judgement_n at_o different_a time_n and_o upon_o divers_a reason_n which_o may_v present_v themselves_o to_o our_o understanding_n do_v not_o you_o in_o divers_a place_n pretend_v that_o this_o reason_n be_v above_o all_o other_o god_n say_v so_o therefore_o it_o be_v true_a and_o further_o do_v you_o not_o say_v pag._n 144._o n._n 31._o if_o you_o be_v so_o infallible_a as_o the_o apostle_n be_v show_v it_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v they_o go_v forth_o say_v s._n mark_n and_o preach_v every_o where_o the_o lord_n work_v with_o they_o and_o confirm_v their_o word_n with_o sign_n follow_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o god_n shall_v lie_v and_o that_o the_o eternal_a truth_n shall_v set_v his_o hand_n and_o seal_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o a_o falsehood_n or_o of_o such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v partly_o true_a and_o partly_o false_a the_o apostle_n doctrine_n be_v thus_o confirm_v therefore_o it_o be_v entire_o true_a and_o in_o no_o part_n either_o false_a or_o uncertain_a if_o the_o testimony_n of_o god_n be_v with_o you_o above_o all_o reason_n and_o that_o by_o sign_n or_o miracle_n the_o eternal_a truth_n set_v his_o hand_n and_o seal_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o what_o be_v so_o confirm_v how_o come_v it_o that_o your_o faith_n can_v be_v stagger_v notwithstanding_o the_o work_n of_o such_o miracle_n if_o in_o your_o judgement_n the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o scripture_n be_v not_o as_o good_a as_o the_o miracle_n by_o which_o it_o be_v confirm_v be_v great_a or_o what_o can_v it_o avail_v we_o to_o prove_v our_o doctrine_n by_o miracle_n as_o the_o apostle_n do_v if_o the_o belief_n of_o those_o point_n so_o prove_v must_v stand_v to_o the_o mercy_n of_o your_o judgement_n which_o as_o i_o say_v may_v vary_v upon_o divers_a occasion_n and_o yet_o this_o diversity_n of_o judgement_n you_o must_v according_a to_o this_o your_o doctrine_n follow_v even_o against_o any_o point_n though_o confirm_v by_o miracle_n it_o be_v therefore_o clear_a that_o in_o your_o principle_n you_o can_v have_v no_o certainty_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o scripture_n nor_o of_o the_o content_n threrof_o although_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o it_o alone_o do_v express_o and_o inparticular_a contain_v all_o point_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v 63._o your_o 8._o error_n consist_v in_o this_o that_o beside_o what_o i_o have_v say_v already_o in_o your_o second_o and_o three_o error_n that_o you_o impeach_v the_o certainty_n of_o scripture_n by_o take_v away_o universal_a infallibility_n from_o the_o apostle_n who_o write_v it_o and_o for_o who_o authority_n we_o believe_v it_o i_o find_v you_o do_v the_o same_o in_o other_o place_n you_o say_v p._n 144._o n._n 30._o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n depend_v upon_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o beside_o this_o dependence_n be_v voluntary_a for_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o church_n to_o deviate_v from_o this_o rule_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o aggregation_n of_o man_n of_o which_o every_o one_o have_v free_a will_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o passion_n and_o error_n change_v the_o term_n and_o say_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o apostle_n depend_v ●pon_o the_o infallibility_n of_o our_o saviour_n and_o this_o dependence_n be_v voluntary_a for_o it_o be_v in_o the_o power_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o deviate_v from_o this_o rule_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o number_n of_o man_n of_o who_o every_o one_o have_v freewill_n and_o be_v subject_a to_o passion_n and_o error_n and_o that_o we_o way_n be_v sure_a of_o this_o last_o in_o the_o very_a next_z n._n 31._o you_o teach_v that_o the_o apostle_n themselves_o even_o after_o the_o send_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n be_v and_o through_o inadvertence_n or_o prejudice_n and_o p._n 137._o n._n 21._o to_o tinadvertence_n or_o prejudice_n you_o add_v or_o some_o other_o cause_n which_o give_v scope_n enough_o to_o censure_v the_o apostle_n continue_v for_o a_o time_n in_o a_o error_n repugnant_a to_o a_o reveal_v truth_n notwitstand_v
this_o objection_n or_o invention_n no_o certainty_n can_v be_v have_v what_o the_o apostle_n or_o other_o preacher_n teach_v or_o teach_v not_o with_o infallibility_n nor_o will_v there_o remain_v any_o mean_n to_o convert_v man_n to_o christianity_n for_o every_o one_o may_v say_v that_o not_o the_o point_v which_o he_o apprehend_v to_o be_v false_a be_v confirm_v by_o miracle_n but_o those_o other_o article_n which_o he_o conceive_v to_o be_v true_a and_o so_o no_o heretic_n can_v be_v convince_v by_o scripture_n which_o he_o will_v say_v be_v not_o the_o word_n of_o god_n except_o for_o his_o opinion_n and_o so_o nothing_o will_v be_v prove_v out_o of_o scripture_n even_o for_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v contain_v in_o it_o neither_o will_v any_o thing_n remain_v certain_a except_o a_o general_n unprofitable_a impracticable_a notion_n that_o the_o apostle_n teach_v and_o the_o scripture_n contain_v some_o thing_n reveal_v by_o god_n without_o know_v what_o they_o be_v in_o particular_a which_o will_v be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n and_o therefore_o as_o good_a as_o nothing_o 8._o but_o yet_o dato_fw-la non_fw-la concesso_fw-la that_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o church_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v only_o in_o such_o particular_a point_n as_o be_v prove_v by_o miracle_n &c_n &c_n we_o say_v that_o innumerable_a miracle_n have_v be_v wrought_v in_o consirmation_n of_o those_o particular_a point_n wherein_o we_o disagree_v from_o protestant_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o brierly_n tract_n 2._o chap_n 3_o sect_n 7._o subdiv_n 1._o for_o example_n of_o prayer_n to_o saint_n out_o of_o s._n austin_n civet_fw-la l._n 22._o c._n 8._o worship_n of_o relic_n out_o of_o s._n gregory_n nazian_n s._n austin_n s._n hierom_n s._n basil_n greg_n turonen_n theodoret_n the_o image_n of_o christ_n real_a presence_n sacrifice_n of_o christ_n body_n purgatory_n prayer_n for_o the_o dead_a the_o great_a virtue_n of_o the_o sign_n of_o the_o cross_n holy_a water_n light_n in_o the_o church_n reservation_n of_o the_o sacrament_n holy_a chrism_n adoration_n of_o the_o cross_n confession_n of_o sin_n to_o a_o priest_n and_o extreme_a unction_n which_o miracle_n brierly_n prove_v by_o irrefragable_a testimony_n of_o most_o creditable_a author_n and_o holy_a father_n whereof_o if_o any_o protestant_a doubt_n he_o can_v do_v no_o less_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o his_o soul_n than_o examine_v the_o matter_n either_o by_o the_o 〈◊〉_d of_o this_o author_n or_o of_o other_o catholic_a writer_n and_o not_o only_o by_o 〈…〉_o clamour_n and_o calumny_n of_o protestant_a preacher_n in_o their_o ser_n 〈…〉_o writer_n in_o their_o book_n and_o let_v he_o take_v with_o he_o for_o his_o 〈…〉_o thief_n consideration_n 1._o that_o these_o miracle_n be_v wrought_v and_o testify_v before_o any_o protestant_a appear_v in_o the_o world_n and_o therefore_o can_v not_o be_v feign_v or_o record_v upon_o any_o particular_a design_n against_o they_o and_o their_o heresye_n 2._o that_o even_o protestant_n acknowledge_v the_o truth_n of_o such_o miracle_n whitaker_n count_v duraeum_n lib_n 10._o say_v i_o do_v not_o think_v those_o miracle_n vain_a which_o be_v report_v to_o have_v be_v do_v at_o the_o monument_n of_o saint_n as_o also_o fox_n and_o godwin_n acknowledge_v miracle_n wrought_v by_o s._n austin_n the_o monk_n send_v by_o s._n gregory_n pope_n to_o convert_v england_n through_o god_n hand_n as_o may_v be_v see_v in_o brierly_n tract_n 1._o sect_n 5._o and_o yet_o it_o be_v confess_v by_o protestant_n and_o be_v evident_a of_o itself_o that_o he_o convert_v we_o to_o the_o roman_a faith_n but_o not_o to_o be_v long_o i_o refer_v the_o reader_n to_o brierly_n in_o the_o index_n of_o who_o book_n in_o the_o word_n miracle_n he_o will_v find_v full_a satisfaction_n if_o he_o examine_v his_o allegation_n that_o in_o every_o age_n since_o our_o saviour_n christ_n there_o have_v be_v wrought_v many_o ad_fw-la great_a miracle_n both_o by_o the_o professor_n of_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o express_o in_o confirmation_n of_o it_o this_o i_o say_v and_o avouch_v for_o a_o certain_a truth_n that_o whatsoever_o heretic_n can_v object_v against_o miracle_n wrought_v by_o professor_n of_o our_o religion_n and_o in_o proof_n if_o it_o may_v be_v in_o the_o same_o manner_n object_v against_o the_o miracle_n of_o our_o b._n saviour_n and_o his_o apostle_n and_o that_o they_o can_v impugn_v we_o but_o joint_o they_o must_v undermine_v all_o christianity_n 9_o to_o these_o two_o consideration_n let_v this_o three_o be_v add_v that_o it_o be_v evident_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n miracle_n to_o be_v certain_a proof_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o religion_n as_o be_v appoint_v by_o god_n for_o that_o end_n exod_n 4.1_o when_o moses_n say_v they_o will_v not_o believe_v i_o nor_o hear_v my_o voice_n god_n give_v he_o the_o gift_n of_o miracle_n that_o they_o may_v believe_v god_n have_v speak_v to_o he_o 3._o reg_n 17._o verse_n 24._o that_o woman_n who_o son_n elias_n have_v raise_v to_o life_n say_v now_o in_o this_o i_o have_v know_v that_o thou_o be_v a_o man_n of_o god_n and_o the_o word_n of_o our_o lord_n in_o thy_o mouth_n be_v true_a christ_n matt_n 11._o v._o 3.4.5_o be_v ask_v whether_o he_o be_v the_o messiah_n prove_v himself_o to_o be_v such_o by_o the_o miracle_n which_o he_o wrought_v the_o blind_a see_v the_o lame_a walk_n the_o leper_n be_v make_v clean_o the_o deaf_a hear_v the_o dead_a rise_n again_o which_o word_n signify_v that_o miracle_n be_v not_o only_o effectual_a but_o necessary_a to_o prove_v the_o truth_n of_o a_o doctrine_n contrary_a to_o what_o be_v receyve_v before_o yea_o joan_n 5.36_o miracle_n be_v call_v a_o great_a testimony_n they_o john_n marc_n ult_n they_o preach_v every_o where_o our_o lord_n work_v withal_o and_o consirm_v the_o word_n with_o sign_n that_o follow_v 2._o cor_n 12._o v._o 12._o the_o sign_n of_o my_o apostleship_n have_v be_v do_v upon_o you_o in_o all_o patience_n and_o wonder_n and_o mighty_a deed_n hebr._n 2.4_o god_n withal_o testify_v by_o sign_n and_o wonder_n and_o divers_a miracle_n but_o why_o do_v i_o urge_v this_o point_n you_o clear_o confess_v it_o pag_n 144._o n._n 31._o in_o these_o word_n if_o you_o be_v so_o infallible_a as_o the_o apostle_n be_v show_v it_o as_o the_o apostle_n do_v they_o go_v forth_o say_v s._n mark_v and_o preach_v every_o where_o the_o lord_n work_v with_o they_o and_o confirm_v their_o word_n with_o sign_n follow_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o god_n shall_v lie_v and_o that_o the_o eternal_a truth_n shall_v set_v his_o hand_n and_o seal_v to_o the_o confirmation_n of_o a_o falsehood_n or_o of_o such_o doctrine_n as_o be_v partly_o true_a and_o partly_o false_a the_o aposiles_n doctrine_n be_v thus_o confirm_v therefore_o it_o be_v entire_o true_a and_o in_o no_o part_n either_o false_a or_o uncertain_a 10._o now_o put_v these_o truth_n together_o many_o and_o great_a miracle_n have_v be_v wrought_v by_o professor_n of_o the_o roman_a religion_n and_o particular_o in_o confirmation_n of_o it_o miracle_n be_v undoubted_a proof_n of_o the_o true_a church_n faith_n and_o religion_n what_o will_v follow_v but_o that_o the_o roman_a faith_n and_o religion_n be_v entire_o true_a and_o in_o no_o part_n either_o false_a or_o uncertain_a wherefore_o man_n desirous_a of_o their_o eternal_a salvation_n may_v say_v confident_o with_o b._n s._n austin_n lib_fw-la de_fw-la vtilit_fw-la credendi_fw-la cap_n 17._o dubitabimus_fw-la nos_fw-la ejus_fw-la ecclesiae_fw-la etc._n etc._n shall_v we_o doubt_v to_o rest_v in_o the_o bosom_n of_o that_o church_n which_o with_o the_o acknowledgement_n of_o mankind_n have_v obtain_v the_o height_n of_o authority_n from_o the_o apostolic_a sea_n by_o succession_n of_o bishop_n heretic_n in_o vain_a bark_n about_o she_o and_o be_v condemn_v partly_o by_o the_o judgement_n of_o the_o people_n partly_o by_o the_o gravity_n of_o counsel_n partly_o by_o the_o majesty_n of_o miracle_n to_o which_o not_o to_o give_v the_o first_o place_n be_v indeed_o either_o most_o great_a impiety_n or_o precipitous_a arrogancy_n 11._o behold_v the_o note_n of_o the_o true_a church_n miracle_n succession_n of_o bishop_n which_o perpetual_a succession_n of_o bishop_n be_v the_o ground_n and_o foundation_n of_o the_o amplitude_n propagation_n splendour_n and_o glory_n of_o the_o church_n promise_v by_o god_n and_o foretell_v by_o the_o prophet_n as_o may_v be_v see_v isaiae_n chap_n 60._o verse_n 22._o chap_n 2._o verse_n 2._o chap_n 49._o verse_n 23._o chap._n 54._o verse_n 2.3_o psalm_n 2.8_o dan_fw-mi 2.44_o which_o promise_v some_o learned_a protestant_n find_v evident_o not_o to_o be_v fulfil_v in_o the_o protestant_a church_n which_o before_o luther_n be_v none_o and_o be_v resolve_v not_o to_o embrace_v the_o catholic_a church_n wherein_o alone_o those_o promise_n be_v clear_o fulfil_v fall_v
yield_v sufficient_a cause_n to_o forsake_v her_o communion_n which_o be_v direct_o against_o all_o those_o who_o teach_v that_o the_o roman_a church_n do_v not_o err_v fundamental_o and_o yet_o that_o they_o have_v cause_n to_o forsake_v her_o communion_n by_o reason_n of_o her_o error_n we_o must_v therefore_o conclude_v that_o see_v there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a cause_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o communion_n of_o the_o church_n and_o yet_o that_o there_o may_v be_v just_a cause_n to_o do_v so_o if_o she_o be_v subject_a to_o corruption_n or_o error_n we_o must_v absolute_o believe_v she_o to_o be_v infallible_a and_o that_o they_o who_o teach_v the_o contrary_a and_o upon_o that_o pretence_n forsake_v her_o communion_n be_v guilty_a of_o schism_n and_o heresy_n 24._o and_o this_o be_v a_o fit_a place_n to_o put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o your_o doctrine_n that_o the_o apostle_n after_o the_o receive_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n with_o they_o err_v in_o a_o point_n clear_o reveal_v and_o command_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n about_o preach_v the_o gospel_n to_o gentiles_n for_o this_o false_a doctrine_n suppose_v i_o ask_v whether_o or_o no_o it_o have_v be_v necessary_a or_o lawful_a to_o leave_v the_o communion_n of_o that_o most_o primitive_a church_n if_o it_o be_v not_o lawful_a then_o error_n even_o in_o faith_n afford_v not_o a_o just_a cause_n to_o forsake_v a_o church_n if_o you_o say_v it_o be_v lawful_a to_o forsake_v the_o apostle_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n of_o their_o time_n you_o blaspheme_v and_o yet_o if_o the_o apostle_n and_o the_o whole_a primitive_a church_n do_v err_v they_o that_o be_v all_o christian_n might_n and_o ought_v to_o have_v be_v forsake_v and_o therefore_o if_o it_o be_v but_o to_o avoid_v this_o gross_a absurdity_n we_o must_v say_v that_o neither_o the_o church_n of_o that_o nor_o of_o consequent_a age_n can_v err_v 25._o thus_o much_o be_v say_v in_o the_o first_o way_n that_o consider_v thing_n as_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o the_o church_n may_v be_v forsake_v if_o she_o can_v err_v and_o therefore_o because_o it_o be_v most_o certain_a that_o she_o can_v never_o be_v forsake_v we_o must_v firm_o believe_v that_o she_o can_v err_v though_o indeed_o i_o must_v add_v that_o if_o she_o can_v err_v she_o may_v and_o may_v not_o be_v forsake_v it_o be_v no_o strange_a thing_n that_o upon_o a_o false_a supposition_n contradictorye_n may_v follow_v whereof_o more_o hereafter_o 25._o now_o let_v we_o see_v what_o may_v be_v say_v in_o the_o second_o way_n or_o consideration_n that_o be_v in_o order_n to_o protestant_n and_o their_o ground_n or_o ad_fw-la hominem_fw-la though_o i_o must_v confess_v this_o to_o be_v a_o nice_a and_o difficult_a undertake_v by_o reason_n of_o their_o inconstancy_n say_v and_o unsay_n as_o they_o be_v force_v by_o different_a or_o contrary_a occasion_n which_o make_v they_o do_v as_o they_o can_v not_o what_o they_o shall_v and_o never_o hold_v constant_o what_o they_o ought_v 27._o first_o then_o we_o suppose_v that_o the_o church_n out_o of_o which_o luther_n depart_v be_v a_o true_a church_n for_o substance_n whether_o it_o be_v the_o roman_a or_o any_o other_o church_n otherwise_o we_o must_v say_v that_o christ_n have_v no_o true_a church_n on_o earth_n which_o you_o potter_n and_o all_o chief_a protestant_n deny_v and_o express_o teach_v that_o always_o there_o have_v be_v be_v and_o ever_o shall_v be_v such_o a_o church_n as_o we_o have_v see_v above_o in_o so_o much_o as_o d._n lawd_n pag_n 141._o say_v all_o divine_v ancient_a and_o modern_a romanist_n and_o reformer_n agree_v in_o this_o that_o the_o whole_a militant_a church_n of_o christ_n can_v fall_v away_o into_o general_a apostasy_n and_o pag_n 142._o he_o say_v that_o otherwise_o falsehood_n in_o the_o very_a article_n of_o the_o creed_n that_o the_o church_n be_v holy_a may_v be_v the_o subject_n of_o the_o catholic_a faith_n which_o be_v no_o less_o than_o blasphemy_n to_o affirm_v 28._o second_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o she_o do_v not_o err_v in_o any_o fundamental_a point_n every_o one_o whereof_o utter_o destroy_v the_o church_n but_o that_o her_o false_o suppose_a error_n be_v only_o in_o point_n not_o fundamental_a or_o not_o absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n 29._o three_o that_o if_o such_o error_n in_o point_n not_o fundamental_a do_v not_o exclude_v salvation_n man_n may_v be_v save_v without_o profession_n of_o the_o contrary_a truth_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o one_o believe_v a_o error_n and_o also_o the_o truth_n contrary_a to_o that_o error_n and_o therefore_o if_o the_o error_n be_v not_o destructive_a of_o salvation_n it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o contrary_a truth_n be_v necessary_a thereto_o 30._o four_o if_o therefore_o we_o can_v show_v that_o according_a to_o protestant_n error_n in_o point_n not_o fundamental_a destroy_v not_o salvation_n it_o will_v follow_v of_o itself_o that_o in_o their_o ground_n they_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o have_v remain_v in_o the_o external_a communion_n of_o the_o visible_a church_n notwithstanding_o such_o error_n since_o by_o so_o do_v they_o have_v want_v nothing_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n nor_o do_v any_o thing_n incompatible_a therewith_o for_o which_o we_o take_v your_o own_o word_n pag_n 272._o n._n 53._o it_o concern_v every_o man_n who_o separate_v from_o any_o church_n communion_n even_o as_o much_o as_o his_o salvation_n be_v worth_a to_o look_v most_o careful_o to_o it_o that_o the_o cause_n of_o his_o separation_n be_v just_a and_o necessary_a for_o unless_o it_o be_v necessary_a it_o can_v very_o hardly_o be_v sufficient_a and_o say_v i_o how_o can_v it_o be_v necessary_a if_o one_o may_v be_v save_v without_o it_o let_v we_o now_o see_v what_o protestant_n hold_v in_o this_o matter_n 31._o i_o grant_v that_o sometime_o in_o word_n they_o will_v seem_v to_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o believe_v whatsoever_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n if_o it_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v but_o if_o we_o respect_v their_o deed_n and_o consider_v other_o ground_n of_o their_o doctrine_n it_o will_v appear_v that_o they_o must_v hold_v the_o contrary_a and_o that_o in_o express_a word_n they_o sometime_o actual_o declare_v so_o much_o neither_o ought_v this_o to_o seem_v any_o strange_a thing_n since_o heretic_n must_v say_v and_o unsay_v to_o help_v a_o bad_a cause_n as_o well_o as_o their_o wit_n will_v serve_v they_o in_o which_o respect_n i_o can_v never_o much_o approve_v the_o great_a pain_n which_o some_o catholic_a divine_v employ_v to_o prove_v that_o heretic_n hold_v this_o or_o that_o because_o sometime_o they_o deliver_v expression_n contrary_a to_o that_o of_o which_o it_o be_v dispute_v whether_o or_o no_o it_o be_v their_o opinion_n for_o all_o that_o can_v be_v infer_v from_o such_o their_o different_a say_n be_v not_o that_o they_o hold_v determinate_o this_o and_o not_o that_o but_o only_o that_o indeed_o they_o contradict_v and_o by_o god_n just_a judgement_n destroy_v themselves_o 32._o well_o then_o that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o believe_v whatsoever_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o sufficient_o propound_v potter_n pag_n 245._o affirm_v in_o these_o word_n it_o seem_v fundamental_a to_o the_o faith_n and_o for_o the_o salvation_n of_o every_o member_n of_o the_o church_n that_o he_o acknowledge_v and_o believe_v all_o such_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o whereof_o he_o may_v be_v sufficient_o convince_v that_o they_o belong_v to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o jesus_n christ_n for_o he_o that_o be_v sufficient_o convince_v do_v oppose_v be_v obstinate_a a_o heretic_n and_o final_o such_o a_o one_o as_o exclude_v himself_o out_o of_o heaven_n wherinto_o no_o wilful_a sinner_n can_v enter_v and_o pag_n 250._o it_o be_v fundamental_a to_o a_o christian_n faith_n and_o necessary_a for_o his_o salvation_n that_o he_o believe_v all_o reveal_v truth_n of_o god_n whereof_o he_o may_v be_v convince_v that_o they_o be_v from_o god_n and_o herupon_o chillingworth_n pag_n 11._o speak_v to_o charity_n maintain_v in_o this_o manner_n it_o amaze_v i_o to_o hear_v you_o say_v that_o he_o dr._n potter_n decline_v this_o question_n and_o never_o tell_v you_o whether_o or_o no_o there_o be_v any_o other_o point_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v sufficient_o propound_v as_o divine_a revelation_n may_v be_v deny_v and_o disbelieved_a he_o tell_v you_o plain_o there_o be_v none_o such_o again_o it_o be_v almost_o as_o strange_a to_o i_o why_o you_o shall_v say_v this_o be_v the_o only_a thing_n in_o question_n whether_o a_o man_n may_v deny_v or_o disbelieve_v any_o point_n of_o faith_n sufficient_o present_v to_o his_o understanding_n as_o a_o truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n produce_v any_o one_o protestant_a that_o ever_o do_v so_o and_o i_o will_v give_v you_o leave_v to_o say_v it_o
of_o luther_n cardinal_n caietan_n be_v send_v to_o germany_n for_o that_o very_a purpose_n a_o safe_a conduct_n be_v assure_v to_o they_o and_o for_o communion_n in_o sacrament_n liturgy_n and_o obedience_n to_o prelate_n they_o do_v separate_v from_o they_o as_o well_o as_o from_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n one_o of_o their_o error_n be_v that_o our_o worship_n of_o god_n be_v corrupt_v they_o can_v not_o communicate_v with_o we_o in_o liturgy_n public_a prayer_n etc._n etc._n therefore_o they_o first_o do_v separate_v themselves_o fugitivi_n non_fw-la fugati_fw-la the_o contrary_a whereof_o they_o be_v wont_v to_o affirm_v and_o not_o only_o they_o cease_v to_o communicate_v with_o we_o nor_o be_v content_a to_o hold_v their_o peace_n bear_v with_o patience_n the_o corruption_n of_o the_o time_n as_o they_o false_o style_v they_o but_o also_o draw_v man_n to_o conventicle_n of_o their_o own_o pretend_v to_o erect_v new_a church_n and_o set_v up_o altar_n against_o altar_n and_o the_o like_a and_o this_o against_o the_o command_n of_o bishop_n and_o prince_n both_o ecclesiastical_a and_o temporal_a you_o profess_v hight_o to_o esteem_n hugo_n grotius_n if_o in_o this_o you_o believe_v not_o i_o believe_v he_o in_o voto_fw-la pro_fw-la pace_fw-la ecclesiastica_fw-la pa_n 5._o intelligebam_fw-la say_v he_o ex_fw-la seniorum_fw-la relatu_fw-la &_o ex_fw-la perscriptis_fw-la historiis_fw-la extitisse_fw-la postea_fw-la homines_fw-la qui_fw-la illam_fw-la in_fw-la qua_fw-la majores_fw-la nostri_fw-la fuerant_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la deserendan_n omnino_fw-la dicerent_fw-la neque_fw-la tantum_fw-la ipsi_fw-la desererent_fw-la nonnulli_fw-la etiam_fw-la priusquam_fw-la excommunicati_fw-la essent_fw-la sed_fw-la &_o novos_fw-la caetus_fw-la facerent_fw-la quos_fw-la vocabant_fw-la &_o ipsi_fw-la ecclesias_fw-la nova_fw-la ibi_fw-la facerent_fw-la presbyteria_fw-la docerent_fw-la sacramenta_fw-la administrarent_fw-la idque_fw-la multis_fw-la in_o locis_fw-la contra_fw-la edicta_fw-la &_o regum_fw-la &_o episcoporum_fw-la dicerentque_fw-la ut_fw-la haec_fw-la defenderent_fw-la planè_fw-la quasi_fw-la de_fw-la caelum_fw-la mandatum_fw-la haberent_fw-la quale_fw-la apostoli_fw-la habuerant_fw-la obediendum_fw-la deo_fw-la magis_fw-la esse_fw-la quàm_fw-la hominibus_fw-la which_o refractory_a proceed_n how_o much_o he_o dislike_v be_v declare_v by_o he_o pag_n 31._o novum_n caetum_fw-la &_o ut_fw-la nunc_fw-la loqui_fw-la mos_fw-la est_fw-la ecclefiam_fw-la colligere_fw-la mihi_fw-la etiamsi_fw-la liceret_fw-la non_fw-la liberet_fw-la video_fw-la quàm_fw-la malè_fw-la id_fw-la aliis_fw-la cesserit_fw-la multiplicarunt_fw-la numerum_fw-la &_o non_fw-la laetitiam_fw-la if_o you_o ponder_v the_o word_n of_o grotius_n you_o can_v choose_v but_o see_v how_o perfect_o they_o agree_v to_o luther_n and_o his_o follower_n and_o clear_o confute_v this_o your_o memorandum_n and_o indeed_o whosoever_o consider_v this_o point_n will_v find_v it_o to_o be_v no_o better_o than_o nonsense_n and_o a_o contradiction_n to_o allege_v this_o cause_n for_o justify_v your_o separation_n since_o before_o any_o excommunication_n man_n leave_v the_o church_n by_o profess_v a_o contrary_a faith_n and_o in_o virtue_n of_o that_o new_a faith_n forsake_v her_o communion_n and_o yet_o say_v that_o they_o leave_v it_o because_o we_o require_v as_o a_o condition_n of_o our_o communion_n that_o they_o leave_v not_o that_o which_o necessary_o and_o as_o i_o may_v say_v essential_o and_o antecedent_o they_o of_o themselves_o do_v leave_v whether_o we_o require_v it_o or_o no_o and_o therefore_o our_o require_v it_o can_v be_v the_o cause_n of_o that_o effect_n which_o be_v preexistent_a before_o that_o which_o you_o say_v be_v the_o cause_n thereof_o and_o will_v be_v the_o same_o whether_o we_o require_v it_o or_o no_o and_o we_o may_v say_v that_o heretic_n be_v the_o first_o as_o it_o be_v to_o excommunicate_v and_o divide_v themselves_o before_o the_o church_n can_v excommunicate_v they_o therefore_o this_o allegation_n of_o impose_v under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n a_o necessity_n &c_n &c_n be_v plain_o impertinent_a and_o all_o must_v be_v reduce_v to_o the_o cause_n itself_o whether_o our_o doctrine_n be_v sufficient_o and_o clear_o convince_v to_o be_v error_n and_o then_o whether_o such_o error_n be_v not_o fundamental_a can_v be_v sufficient_a to_o cause_v a_o separation_n and_o so_o i_o retort_v this_o ground_n and_o say_v that_o since_o you_o confess_v our_o error_n alone_o not_o to_o be_v a_o sufficient_a cause_n to_o excuse_v your_o separation_n from_o we_o and_o for_o this_o reason_n you_o say_v protestant_n be_v not_o oblige_v to_o separate_v themselves_o from_o one_o another_o you_o must_v also_o acknowledge_v that_o indeed_o they_o have_v no_o sufficient_a cause_n to_o divide_v themselves_o from_o all_o church_n 63._o second_o yourself_o contradict_v this_o memorandum_n for_o pag_n 276._o n._n 59_o you_o say_v though_o your_o corruption_n in_o doctrine_n in_o themselves_o which_o yet_o be_v false_a do_v not_o yet_o your_o oblige_v we_o to_o profess_v your_o doctrine_n uncorrupted_a against_o knowledge_n and_o conscience_n may_v induce_v a_o obligation_n to_o depart_v from_o your_o communion_n now_o if_o our_o corruption_n in_o themselves_o induce_v a_o obligation_n to_o depart_v from_o our_o communion_n this_o obligation_n be_v induce_v before_o the_o impose_v upon_o man_n under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n a_o necessity_n of_o profess_v know_v error_n and_o why_o then_o do_v you_o say_v that_o impose_v upon_o man_n under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n a_o necessity_n of_o profess_v know_v error_n be_v the_o cause_n which_o protestant_n allege_v to_o justify_v their_o separation_n since_o there_o be_v another_o cause_n precedent_n to_o that_o and_o such_o a_o cause_n as_o without_o it_o this_o other_o of_o impose_v upon_o man_n &c_n &c_n can_v subsist_v for_o if_o our_o error_n in_o themselves_o do_v not_o impose_v upon_o you_o a_o obligation_n to_o forsake_v we_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n that_o they_o be_v not_o damnable_a in_o themselves_o nor_o necessary_o to_o be_v avoid_v and_o consequent_o you_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o remain_v with_o we_o notwithstanding_o such_o error_n and_o if_o you_o ought_v to_o do_v so_o the_o church_n may_v just_o command_v it_o under_o pain_n of_o excommunication_n as_o a_o punishment_n of_o precedent_a obstinacy_n and_o a_o medicine_n to_o prevent_v it_o for_o time_n to_o come_v and_o so_o yourself_o overthrow_v this_o memorandum_n whereby_o you_o will_v excuse_v your_o division_n from_o the_o church_n yet_o on_o the_o other_o side_n if_o our_o pretend_a error_n do_v in_o themselves_o induce_v a_o obligation_n to_o forsake_v our_o church_n different_a sect_n of_o protestant_n must_n for_o the_o same_o reason_n forsake_v one_o another_o because_o you_o deny_v not_o their_o error_n to_o be_v in_o themselves_o damnable_a and_o therefore_o you_o put_v a_o difference_n between_o they_o and_o we_o only_o because_o they_o exact_v not_o of_o other_o a_o profession_n of_o their_o error_n and_o we_o do_v and_o so_o you_o reduce_v all_o to_o this_o exact_v or_o not_o exact_v a_o profession_n of_o know_a error_n and_o not_o to_o the_o error_n in_o themselves_o and_o yet_o we_o have_v hear_v you_o say_v that_o our_o error_n in_o diverse_a of_o which_o chief_a learned_a protestant_n agree_v with_o we_o against_o their_o brethren_n in_o themselves_o induce_v a_o obligation_n upon_o you_o to_o forsake_v us._n what_o be_v here_o but_o contradict_v say_v and_o unsay_n the_o same_o thing_n which_o show_v that_o with_o you_o nothing_o be_v certain_a except_o that_o you_o be_v certain_a of_o nothing_o and_o consequent_o can_v have_v no_o necessary_a and_o certain_a reason_n to_o forsake_v all_o church_n 64._o three_o to_o bring_v you_o out_o of_o the_o cloud_n and_o to_o understand_v thing_n as_o they_o be_v the_o separation_n we_o mean_v when_o there_o be_v speech_n of_o division_n by_o schism_n and_o heresy_n be_v not_o that_o separation_n which_o be_v cause_v by_o the_o ecclesiastical_a censure_n of_o excommunication_n which_o deprive_v man_n of_o the_o public_a suffrage_n of_o god_n church_n of_o use_n of_o sacrament_n and_o conversation_n with_o faithful_a people_n and_o may_v consist_v with_o the_o grace_n of_o god_n and_o charity_n not_o only_a when_o it_o be_v unjust_a but_o also_o when_o the_o party_n censure_v repent_v himself_o by_o perfect_a contrition_n of_o the_o sin_n for_o which_o the_o censure_n be_v impose_v though_o he_o be_v not_o actual_o absolve_v from_o it_o in_o regard_n of_o some_o cause_n or_o invincible_a impediment_n which_o be_v not_o in_o his_o power_n to_o alter_v or_o remove_v but_o hearty_o desire_v to_o be_v absolve_v and_o so_o be_v unite_v to_o the_o church_n in_o voto_fw-la and_o this_o censure_n of_o excommunication_n be_v wont_a to_o be_v inflict_v not_o only_o for_o schism_n or_o heresy_n but_o for_o other_o offence_n also_o against_o god_n or_o our_o neighbour_n but_o luther_n and_o his_o fellow_n voluntary_o put_v themselves_o upon_o another_o kind_n of_o separation_n to_o wit_n from_o the_o profession_n of_o the_o same_o faith_n and_o
be_v probable_o true_a as_o it_o be_v certain_o most_o false_a in_o so_o much_o as_o d._n jeremy_n tailor_n in_o his_o liberty_n of_o prophesy_v pag._n 252._o speak_v of_o some_o doctrine_n of_o we_o catholic_n which_o he_o say_v lead_v to_o ill_a life_n he_o specifyes_n this_o that_o attrition_n which_o be_v a_o low_a and_o imperfect_a degree_n of_o sorrow_n for_o sin_n or_o as_o other_o say_v a_o sorrow_n for_o sin_n commence_v upon_o any_o reason_n of_o temporal_a hope_n or_o fear_v or_o desire_v or_o any_o thing_n else_o be_v a_o sufficient_a disposition_n for_o a_o man_n in_o the_o sacrament_n of_o penance_n to_o receive_v absolution_n and_o be_v justify_v before_o god_n by_o take_v away_o the_o guilt_n of_o all_o his_o sin_n and_o the_o obligation_n to_o eternal_a pain_n so_o that_o already_o the_o fear_n of_o hell_n be_v quite_o remove_v upon_o condition_n so_o easy_a that_o many_o man_n take_v more_o pain_n to_o get_v a_o groat_n than_o by_o this_o doctrine_n we_o be_v oblige_v to_o for_o the_o cure_n and_o acquit_v all_o the_o great_a sin_n of_o a_o whole_a life_n of_o the_o most_o victous_a person_n in_o the_o world_n how_o contrary_a in_o another_o extreme_a be_v this_o doctor_n to_o the_o choose_a champion_n of_o english_a protestant_n mr._n chillingworth_n but_o as_o for_o our_o doctrine_n concern_v attrition_n the_o doctor_n be_v extreme_o mistake_v to_o say_v no_o worse_o as_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o that_o read_v the_o sacred_a council_n of_o trent_n declare_v what_o sorrow_n be_v require_v to_o obtain_v pardon_n of_o our_o sin_n or_o catholic_a divine_n write_v on_o this_o subject_n for_o if_o the_o sorrow_n be_v conceyve_v upon_o any_o reason_n mere_o of_o temporal_a hope_n or_o fear_v as_o the_o doctor_n speak_v we_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v in_o no_o wise_a sufficient_a to_o make_v man_n capable_a of_o absolution_n or_o forgiveness_n of_o sin_n but_o it_o must_v proceed_v from_o some_o motive_n know_v by_o supernatural_a faith_n for_o example_n the_o fear_n of_o hell_n or_o desire_v of_o heaven_n second_o it_o can_v be_v produce_v by_o the_o natural_a force_n of_o man_n or_o angel_n as_o be_v the_o gift_n of_o god_n and_o require_v the_o special_a moon_n inspiration_n and_o grace_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o therefore_o his_o examp_n of_o gain_v a_o groat_n be_v so_o far_o from_o be_v to_o he_o purpose_v or_o true_a that_o contrary_o all_o the_o wit_n pain_n and_o industry_n of_o all_o man_n that_o have_v be_v be_v or_o shall_v be_v yea_o or_o be_v possible_a to_o be_v create_v can_v arrive_v to_o it_o by_o all_o the_o natural_a force_n of_o they_o all_o though_o they_o be_v assist_v with_o the_o he●●_n of_o all_o angel_n create_v or_o creable_a or_o of_o all_o other_o natural_a creature_n contain_v in_o the_o omnipotency_n of_o almighty_a god_n three_o such_o sorrow_n must_v extend_v itself_o to_o all_o deadly_a sin_n in_o order_n to_o which_o it_o be_v to_o be_v so_o effectual_a that_o it_o must_v exclude_v all_o affection_n to_o they_o and_o the_o penitent_n m●st_v be_v resolve_v rather_o to_o undergo_v a_o thousand_o death_n than_o once_o concern_v to_o the_o least_o mortal_a sin_n and_o therefore_o four_o he_o must_v resolve_v to_o abide_v for_o time_n to_o come_v all_o proximas_fw-la occasiones_fw-la or_o imminent_a danger_n ●f_o fall_v into_o any_o one_o mortal_a sin_n as_o also_o if_o he_o have_v injure_v any_o man_n by_o ●aking_v away_o his_o good_a name_n or_o good_n or_o limb_n or_o life_n he_o must_v effectual_o and_o speedy_o procure_v to_o give_v satisfaction_n or_o make_v restitution_n according_a as_o the_o case_n shall_v require_v yea_o and_o sometime_o if_o it_o be_v just_o fear_v that_o delay_n will_v cause_v a_o fail_n in_o his_o purpose_n absolution_n may_v prudent_o or_o must_v be_v differ_v till_o he_o have_v actual_o satisfy_v all_o obligation_n the_o neglect_n whereof_o will_v prove_v to_o be_v a_o deadly_a sin_n and_o in_o a_o word_n th●t_a sorrow_n which_o we_o call_v attrition_n differ_v from_o contrition_n in_o the_o motive_n only_o because_o contrition_n be_v conceive_v for_o sin_n as_o it_o be_v against_o the_o infinite_a goodness_n of_o god_n attritition_n as_o it_o be_v repugnant_a to_o our_o eternal_a salvation_n and_o therefore_o contrition_n be_v a_o act_n of_o the_o theological_a virtue_n of_o charity_n attrition_n of_o the_o theological_a virtue_n of_o hope_n which_o as_o it_o move_v we_o to_o desire_v and_o hope_v everlasting_a happiness_n so_o it_o incite_v we_o to_o fear_v the_o loss_n thereof_o and_o out_o of_o that_o holy_a fear_n not_o to_o fear_v any_o other_o temporal_a loss_n with_o the_o prejudice_n of_o our_o soul_n according_a to_o those_o word_n of_o our_o bless_a saviour_n do_v you_o not_o fear_v those_o who_o kill_v the_o body_n but_o can_v kill_v the_o soul_n but_o rather_o fear_v he_o who_o can_v punish_v with_o hell_n f●re_o both_o the_o body_n and_o soul_n which_o word_n declare_v that_o as_o i_o say_v a_o natural_a fear_n mere_o of_o temporal_a loss_n though_o it_o be_v even_o of_o our_o life_n i●_n not_o a_o sufficient_a disposition_n for_o pardon_n of_o sin_n as_o be_v signify_v by_o do_v you_o not_o fear_v those_o who_o kill_v the_o body_n but_o can_v kill_v the_o soul_n but_o it_o must_v be_v conceyve_v for_o some_o loss_n know_v by_o supernatural_a faith_n as_o for_o the_o loss_n of_o heaven_n or_o pain_n of_o hell_n as_o be_v signify_v by_o the_o second_o part_n of_o our_o saviour_n speech_n and_o the_o adversative_a particle_n sed_fw-la but_o fear_v hin_n who_o can_v etc._n etc._n this_o mistake_n of_o the_o doctor_n be_v clear_v i_o shall_v not_o n●d_v nor_o be_v it_o for_o my_o present_a purpose_n to_o confute_v his_o other_o follow_a wor●_n full_a of_o mistake_n about_o purgatory_n indulgence_n &c_n &c_n especial_o hau●●g_v speak_v of_o the_o like_a subject_n in_o answer_n to_o mr._n chill_a objection_n ●bout_o indulgence_n &c_n &c_n but_o it_o be_v here_o sufficient_a for_o i_o to_o conclude_v t●●t_o see_v there_o be_v no_o certainty_n among_o protestant_n what_o contrition_n be_v ecessary_a for_o salvation_n as_o we_o have_v see_v by_o the_o disagree_a doctrine_n of_o this_o doctor_n chillingworth_n kemnitius_n luther_n &c_n &c_n it_o follow_v t●●t_a they_o can_v be_v sure_a but_o that_o they_o err_v in_o a_o point_n necessary_a to_o sa●ation_n and_o that_o this_o your_o error_n be_v very_o pernicious_a and_o prejudicious_a troll_v 4._o your_o second_o error_n be_v set_v do_v pag_n 391._o n._n 8._o fine_a where_o you_o say_v that_o although_o we_o pretent_a to_o be_v rigid_a defender_n and_o stout_a champion_n for_o the_o necessity_n of_o good_a wore_n yet_o indeed_o we_o do_v it_o to_o make_v our_o own_o function_n necessary_a but_o o●dience_n to_o god_n unnecessary_a which_o will_v appear_v to_o any_o man_n who_o conside_fw-la what_o strict_a necessity_n the_o scripture_n impose_v upon_o all_o man_n of_o essectuall_a mortisation_n of_o the_o habit_n of_o all_o vice_n and_o effectual_a conversion_n to_o newness_n of_o ●e_n and_o universal_a obedience_n and_o withal_o remember_v that_o a_o act_n of_o at●tion_n which_o you_o say_v with_o priestly_a absolution_n be_v sufficient_a to_o salvation_n be_v not_o mortification_n which_o be_v a_o work_n of_o difficulty_n and_o time_n can_v be_v perform_v in_o a_o instant_n which_o reason_n prove_v that_o perfect_a con●ition_n which_o be_v a_o act_n produce_v in_o a_o instant_n be_v not_o sufficient_a foremission_n of_o sin_n also_o pag_n 292._o n._n 91._o you_o call_v it_o a_o doct_n i●e_n of_o licetiousness_n that_o though_o a_o man_n live_v and_o die_v without_o the_o practice_n of_o christian_a virtue_n and_o with_o the_o habit_n of_o many_o damnable_a sin_n unmortify_v yet_o if_o ●e_v in_o the_o last_o moment_n of_o his_o life_n have_v any_o sorrow_n for_o his_o sin_n this_o any_o be_v bu●n_v untruth_n of_o you_o as_o appear_v by_o what_o i_o say_v even_o now_o against_o dr._n ●aylor_n and_o join_v confession_n with_o it_o certain_o he_o shall_v be_v save_v and_o pg_n 379._o n._n 70._o you_o speak_v to_o catholic_n in_o this_o manner_n if_o i_o follow_v te_fw-fr scripture_n i_o must_v not_o promise_v myself_o salvation_n without_o effectual_a derelicton_n and_o mortification_n of_o all_o vice_n and_o the_o effectual_a practice_n of_o all_o christian_a virtue_n but_o your_o church_n open_v a_o easy_a and_o a_o broad_a way_n to_o heaven_n and_o though_o i_o continue_v all_o my_o life_n long_o in_o a_o course_n of_o sin_n and_o without_o the_o ●ractise_n of_o any_o virtue_n yet_o give_v i_o assurance_n that_o i_o may_v be_v let_v into_o heave_v at_o a_o poslerne_a gate_n even_o by_o any_o act_n of_o attrition_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o death_n if_o it_o be_v join_v with_o confession_n or_o by_o a_o act_n of_o contrition_n
sin_n past_a with_o a_o firm_a resolution_n to_o amend_v for_o time_n to_o come_v be_v a_o sufficient_a disposition_n for_o remission_n of_o sin_n whether_o it_o be_v perfect_a contrition_n without_o sacramental_a absolution_n or_o attrition_n with_o it_o though_o it_o be_v also_o true_a that_o perfect_a contrition_n must_v involve_v a_o purpose_n to_o receive_v absolution_n in_o due_a tyme._n 17._o your_o three_o error_n be_v deliver_v in_o many_o place_n of_o your_o book_n and_o consist_v in_o this_o that_o one_o who_o live_v in_o a_o sinful_a error_n against_o faith_n may_v be_v save_v by_o a_o general_a repentance_n of_o all_o his_o sin_n know_v and_o unknown_a though_o he_o do_v not_o forsake_v that_o culpable_a error_n but_o live_v and_o die_v in_o it_o in_o your_o answer_n to_o the_o preface_n of_o charity_n maintain_v pag_n 7._o n._n 3._o you_o approve_v the_o say_n of_o potter_n that_o both_o side_n by_o the_o confession_n of_o both_o side_n agree_v in_o more_o point_n than_o be_v simple_o and_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o differ_v only_o in_o such_o as_o be_v not_o precise_o necessary_a that_o it_o be_v very_o possible_a a_o man_n may_v die_v in_o error_n and_o yet_o die_v with_o repentance_n as_o for_o all_o his_o sin_n of_o ignorance_n so_o in_o that_o number_n for_o the_o error_n in_o which_o he_o die_v with_o a_o repentance_n though_o not_o explicit_a and_o particular_a which_o be_v not_o simple_o require_v yet_o implicit_a and_o general_a which_o be_v sufficient_a so_o that_o he_o can_v but_o hope_n consider_v the_o goodness_n of_o god_n that_o the_o truth_n retain_v on_o both_o side_n especial_o those_o of_o the_o necessity_n of_o repentance_n from_o dead_a work_n and_o faith_n in_o jesus_n christ_n if_o they_o be_v put_v in_o practice_n may_v be_v a_o andidote_n against_o the_o error_n hold_v on_o either_o side_n to_o such_o he_o mean_v and_o say_v as_o be_v diligent_a in_o seek_v truth_n and_o desirous_a to_o find_v it_o yet_o miss_v of_o it_o through_o humane_a frailty_n and_o die_v in_o error_n 18._o about_o which_o word_n it_o be_v to_o be_v observe_v first_o that_o as_o i_o note_v above_o you_o and_o potter_n confess_v that_o catholics_n hold_v more_o point_n of_o faith_n than_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n so_o that_o the_o point_n in_o which_o we_o differ_v from_o protestant_n which_o you_o call_v error_n be_v not_o necessary_a and_o according_o you_o teach_v pag_n 9_o n._n 7._o that_o man_n may_v be_v save_v though_o they_o hold_v the_o doctrine_n of_o indulgence_n purgatory_n and_o the_o use_n of_o latin_a service_n and_o therefore_o i_o may_v turn_v against_o you_o your_o own_o word_n pag_n 220._o n._n 52._o may_v it_o please_v you_o therefore_o now_o at_o last_o to_o take_v notice_n that_o by_o fundamental_a we_o mean_v all_o and_o only_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a and_o then_o i_o hope_v you_o will_v grant_v that_o we_o may_v safe_o expect_v salvation_n in_o a_o church_n which_o have_v all_o thing_n fundamental_a to_o salvation_n unless_o you_o will_v say_v that_o more_o be_v necessary_a than_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a these_o word_n i_o say_v prove_v that_o we_o may_v even_o safe_o for_o that_o be_v your_o word_n expect_v salvation_n in_o a_o church_n which_o by_o confession_n of_o all_o side_n believe_v more_o point_n than_o be_v necessary_a unless_o you_o will_v say_v that_o more_o be_v necessary_a than_o that_o which_o be_v necessary_a or_o that_o we_o believe_v not_o as_o many_o point_n as_o be_v necessary_a though_o we_o believe_v more_o than_o be_v necessary_a second_o that_o as_o i_o note_v before_o you_o contradict_v yourselves_o in_o say_v that_o by_o the_o goodness_n of_o god_n the_o truth_n retain_v on_o both_o side_n may_v be_v a_o antidote_n against_o the_o error_n of_o such_o as_o be_v diligent_a in_o seek_v truth_n and_o desirous_a to_o find_v it_o yet_o miss_v of_o it_o by_o humane_a frailty_n and_o die_v in_o error_n for_o the_o error_n of_o man_n so_o qualify_v as_o you_o describe_v they_o must_v needs_o be_v invincible_a if_o invincible_a no_o sin_n if_o no_o sin_n how_o can_v any_o truth_n be_v a_o antidote_n against_o they_o or_o how_o can_v the_o doctrine_n of_o necessity_n of_o repentance_n from_o dead_a work_n concern_v work_n which_o be_v not_o dead_a that_o be_v no_o sin_n nor_o can_v be_v the_o object_n of_o repentance_n or_o capable_a of_o pardon_n i_o beseech_v you_o remember_v your_o own_o express_a word_n pag_n 16._o n._n 21._o the_o very_a say_n they_o be_v pardonable_a imply_v they_o need_v pardon_n and_o therefore_o in_o themselves_o be_v damnable_a how_o then_o do_v you_o say_v that_o inculpable_a error_n may_v be_v pardon_v by_o a_o general_a repentance_n or_o how_o do_v you_o in_o particular_a agree_v either_o with_o catholics_n or_o protestant_n about_o the_o necessity_n of_o repentance_n of_o dead_a work_n see_v you_o disagree_v from_o both_o of_o they_o in_o declare_v what_o repentance_n be_v necessary_a three_o pag_n 8._o n._n 3._o you_o say_v the_o doctor_n give_v they_o only_o hope_v of_o pardon_n of_o error_n who_o be_v desirous_a and_o according_a to_o the_o proportion_n of_o their_o opportunitye_n and_o ability_n industrious_a to_o find_v the_o truth_n or_o at_o least_o true_o repentant_a that_o they_o have_v not_o be_v so_o in_o which_o word_n you_o distinguish_v those_o who_o be_v desirous_a and_o industrious_a to_o find_v the_o truth_n from_o those_o who_o be_v repentant_a that_o they_o have_v not_o be_v so_o the_o former_a sort_n of_o which_o man_n be_v not_o capable_a of_o repentance_n because_o they_o commit_v no_o sin_n and_o if_o the_o second_o be_v true_o repentant_a as_o you_o suppose_v they_o be_v that_o they_o have_v not_o be_v desirous_a and_o industrious_a to_o find_v the_o truth_n you_o suppose_v they_o know_v that_o they_o have_v not_o be_v so_o to_o who_o then_o shall_v belong_v that_o repentance_n which_o you_o call_v general_a and_o implicit_a of_o all_o error_n know_v and_o unknown_a four_o howsoever_o you_o endeavour_v to_o answer_v these_o contradiction_n it_o seem_v you_o be_v constant_a that_o a_o sinful_a error_n may_v be_v pardon_v though_o one_o live_v and_o die_v in_o it_o and_o then_o five_o the_o difficulty_n which_o i_o speak_v of_o above_o come_v to_o urge_v you_o how_o such_o a_o man_n can_v attain_v your_o kind_n of_o repentance_n at_o the_o hour_n of_o his_o death_n when_o it_o be_v impossible_a but_o let_v we_o go_v forward_o 19_o pag_n 21._o you_o say_v if_o any_o protestant_n or_o papist_n be_v betray_v into_o or_o keep_v in_o any_o error_n by_o any_o sin_n of_o his_o will_n as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v many_o million_o be_v such_o error_n be_v as_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o sinful_a and_o damnable_a yet_o not_o exclusive_a of_o all_o hope_n of_o salvation_n but_o pardonable_a if_o discover_v upon_o a_o particular_a explicit_a repentance_n if_o not_o discover_v upon_o a_o general_a and_o implicit_a repentance_n for_o all_o sin_n know_v and_o unknown_a in_o which_o number_n all_o sinful_a error_n must_v of_o necessity_n be_v contain_v pag_n 168._o n._n 52._o speak_v of_o error_n proceed_v from_o some_o voluntary_a and_o avoidable_a fault_n and_o in_o its_o own_o nature_n damnable_a you_o say_v if_o the_o party_n so_o err_v die_v with_o contrition_n for_o all_o his_o sin_n know_v and_o unknown_a as_o his_o error_n can_v be_v no_o impediment_n but_o he_o may_v his_o error_n though_o in_o itself_o damnable_a to_o he_o according_a to_o your_o doctrine_n charity_n maintain_v disclaim_v from_o any_o such_o false_a and_o implicatory_a doctrine_n as_o this_o it_o will_v not_o prove_v so_o as_o the_o most_o malignant_a poison_n will_v not_o poison_v he_o that_o receive_v with_o it_o a_o more_o powerful_a antidote_n in_o these_o and_o other_o passage_n of_o your_o book_n you_o teach_v that_o a_o sinful_a and_o damnable_a error_n for_o of_o such_o we_o must_v speak_v when_o we_o speak_v of_o repentance_n to_o object_v whereof_o his_o sin_n may_v be_v forgive_v while_o one_o remain_v in_o such_o a_o error_n or_o without_o relinquish_a it_o which_o be_v a_o most_o pernicious_a error_n and_o destructive_a of_o itself_o for_o if_o his_o error_n be_v sinful_a it_o be_v not_o because_o he_o see_v it_o to_o be_v a_o error_n and_o yet_o persist_v in_o it_o which_o be_v impossible_a see_v that_o to_o judge_v a_o particular_a error_n to_o be_v a_o error_n be_v to_o forsake_v it_o and_o embrace_v the_o contrary_a truth_n because_o a_o error_n discover_v be_v destroy_v neither_o be_v it_o a_o error_n but_o a_o true_a judgement_n to_o judge_v that_o a_o error_n be_v a_o error_n according_a to_o the_o say_n of_o s._n austin_n lib._n 15._o de_fw-la trinit_fw-la cap._n 10._o nemo_fw-la falsa_fw-la novit_fw-la nisi_fw-la cum_fw-la falsa_fw-la
place_n and_o therefore_o charity_n maintain_v have_v reason_n to_o say_v that_o in_o this_o particular_a he_o never_o touch_v the_o point_n real_o see_v he_o himself_o destroy_v what_o himself_o may_v seem_v once_o to_o have_v build_v 5._o all_o that_o you_o have_v n._n 10._o be_v answer_v by_o say_v that_o it_o be_v damnable_a not_o to_o believe_v any_o least_o point_n which_o the_o church_n propose_v to_o be_v a_o divine_a truth_n that_o be_v as_o revealed_z by_o god_n till_o which_o time_n one_o may_v err_v without_o heresy_n now_o to_o determine_v what_o point_v in_o particular_a be_v so_o propose_v be_v to_o run_v overall_a particular_a article_n of_o faith_n yet_o to_o your_o instance_n i_o answer_v brief_o the_o quarta_fw-la decimani_fw-la who_o hold_v that_o easter_n be_v to_o be_v keep_v according_a to_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v just_o condemn_v of_o heresy_n not_o precise_o for_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n but_o for_o the_o ground_n of_o that_o assertion_n that_o it_o be_v necessary_a to_o do_v so_o which_o will_v have_v bring_v with_o it_o a_o necessity_n of_o keep_v all_o the_o rite_n of_o the_o jew_n and_o therefore_o you_o say_v untrue_o that_o god_n have_v not_o then_o declare_v himself_o about_o easter_n but_o the_o keep_n of_o chrismass_n day_n ten_o day_n soon_o or_o late_a go_v upon_o no_o such_o ground_n for_o i_o never_o hear_v that_o the_o jew_n keep_v our_o saviour_n nativity_n either_o according_a to_o the_o new_a or_o old_a calendar_n as_o for_o believe_v that_o there_o be_v antipode_n if_o you_o can_v produce_v any_o text_n of_o scripture_n or_o definition_n of_o god_n church_n i_o will_v hold_v it_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n sure_a i_o be_o it_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o reason_n not_o to_o produce_v such_o impertinent_a example_n as_o you_o do_v the_o same_o i_o say_v of_o predetermination_n that_o what_o the_o church_n shall_v determine_v will_v become_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n the_o example_n of_o millenaryes_n and_o necessity_n of_o eucharist_n for_o infant_n which_o last_o you_o untrue_o father_n upon_o s._n augustine_n you_o be_v still_o obtrude_a upon_o we_o without_o prove_v what_o you_o say_v as_o also_o that_o s._n austin_n do_v not_o hold_v it_o as_o a_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o the_o bishop_n of_o rome_n have_v right_o and_o power_n to_o judge_v of_o all_o appeal_n from_o all_o part_n of_o the_o world_n and_o it_o be_v manifest_o false_a that_o the_o church_n ever_o determine_v the_o doctrine_n of_o the_o millenaryes_n or_o that_o s._n austin_n do_v deny_v the_o pope_n have_v right_o to_o judge_v of_o all_o appeal_n though_o for_o the_o practice_n thereof_o there_o may_v be_v just_a cause_n not_o to_o use_v it_o promiscuous_o in_o all_o occasion_n you_o say_v justine_n martyr_n deny_v that_o some_o good_a christian_n hold_v the_o contrary_a to_o the_o millenaryes_n but_o even_o learned_a protestant_n and_o more_o skilful_a in_o the_o greek_a tongue_n than_o you_o be_v interpret_v s._n justine_n martyr_n in_o a_o direct_a contrary_a sense_n as_o i_o show_v hereafter_o and_o in_o fine_a our_o question_n be_v only_o concern_v matter_n define_v by_o the_o church_n and_o not_o what_o any_o particular_a doctor_n may_v hold_v it_o seem_v you_o hold_v it_o not_o to_o be_v a_o matter_n of_o faith_n that_o heretic_n may_v give_v true_a baptism_n but_o s._n austin_n hold_v and_o god_n church_n believe_v it_o to_o be_v such_o and_o by_o this_o example_n we_o prove_v that_o some_o point_n be_v matter_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v not_o evident_o contain_v in_o scripture_n 6._o to_o your_o n._n 13._o i_o answer_v charity_n maintain_v n._n 6._o say_v not_o that_o a_o persuasion_n that_o man_n of_o different_a religion_n may_v be_v save_v be_v atheism_n but_o a_o ground_n of_o atheism_n yea_o he_o say_v not_o this_o absolute_o but_o thus_o there_o be_v not_o a_o more_o pernicious_a heresy_n or_o rather_o mark_v this_o modification_n a_o ground_n of_o atheism_n than_o a_o persuasion_n that_o man_n of_o different_a religion_n may_v be_v save_v where_o you_o see_v such_o a_o doctrine_n be_v not_o absolute_o call_v atheism_n but_o only_o that_o it_o may_v be_v rather_o call_v a_o ground_n of_o atheism_n than_o a_o pure_a or_o ordinary_a kind_a of_o heresy_n and_o i_o pray_v be_v not_o a_o persuasion_n that_o man_n of_o different_a religion_n may_v be_v save_v without_o repentance_n a_o ground_n and_o disposition_n either_o to_o deny_v the_o deity_n which_o be_v to_o be_v worship_v only_o by_o a_o true_a religion_n or_o not_o to_o care_n much_o for_o god_n or_o religion_n and_o who_o will_v dislike_v this_o say_n of_o charity_n maintain_v pronounce_v in_o general_a except_o a_o socinian_n or_o some_o such_o creature_n yourself_o say_v n._n 8._o that_o to_o deny_v a_o thing_n sufficient_o propose_v to_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n be_v to_o give_v god_n the_o lie_n and_o to_o say_v that_o man_n may_v be_v save_v who_o give_v god_n the_o lie_n be_v it_o not_o a_o ground_n and_o disposition_n to_o end_v in_o atheism_n potter_n say_v pag_n 212._o whatsoever_o be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n or_o propound_v by_o the_o church_n out_o of_o scripture_n be_v in_o some_o sense_n fundamental_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o god_n and_o his_o word_n by_o which_o it_o be_v recommend_v that_o as_o such_o be_v may_v not_o be_v deny_v or_o contradict_v without_o infidelity_n why_o do_v you_o not_o question_v the_o doctor_n and_o ask_v how_o he_o can_v be_v a_o infidel_n who_o believe_v the_o true_a god_n remember_v your_o own_o say_n that_o the_o natural_a fecundity_n of_o error_n be_v to_o beget_v error_n and_o so_o what_o will_v follow_v of_o freedom_n and_o indifferency_n for_o all_o belief_n of_o which_o one_o only_a can_v be_v true_a but_o a_o flit_a from_o one_o error_n to_o another_o till_o they_o hold_v no_o religion_n at_o all_o but_o the_o truth_n be_v you_o can_v not_o impugn_v charity_n maintain_v but_o by_o change_v or_o rather_o falsify_v the_o question_n which_o be_v whether_o man_n of_o different_a religion_n may_v be_v save_v without_o repentance_n and_o you_o say_v they_o may_v be_v save_v by_o repentance_n whereby_o it_o may_v seem_v you_o do_v not_o deny_v but_o it_o be_v a_o ground_n of_o atheism_n to_o assirme_v that_o man_n of_o different_a religion_n may_v be_v save_v without_o any_o repentance_n though_o they_o live_v and_o die_v in_o their_o error_n 7._o the_o rest_n of_o your_o answer_n be_v only_o a_o answer_n to_o such_o demand_n as_o charity_n maintain_v propose_v which_o have_v be_v handle_v at_o large_a in_o other_o place_n i_o will_v only_o brief_o note_v first_o what_o you_o say_v pag_n 18._o n._n 26._o in_o these_o word_n why_o a_o implicit_a faith_n in_o christ_n and_o his_o word_n shall_v not_o suffice_v as_o well_o as_o a_o implicit_a faith_n in_o your_o church_n i_o have_v desire_v to_o be_v resolve_v by_o many_o of_o your_o side_n but_o never_o can_v have_v be_v express_o answer_v chap_n 2._o where_o i_o have_v show_v that_o scripture_n alone_o neither_o extensive_a contain_v all_o necessary_a point_n of_o faith_n nor_o as_o i_o may_v say_v intensive_a see_v even_o those_o article_n which_o it_o contain_v for_o the_o true_a and_o certain_a understanding_n of_o they_o require_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n to_o say_v nothing_o that_o we_o can_v have_v a_o implicit_a faith_n in_o the_o scripture_n unless_o it_o be_v resolve_v into_o our_o belief_n of_o the_o church_n for_o who_o authority_n we_o receive_v scripture_n itself_o second_o that_o n._n 19_o you_o answer_v not_o direct_o to_o the_o question_n of_o charity_n maintain_v part_n 1._o p._n 15._o n._n 12._o what_o visible_a church_n be_v there_o before_o luther_n disagree_v with_o the_o pretend_a church_n of_o protestant_n but_o transferr_v it_o from_o a_o church_n to_o particular_a man_n as_o if_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o to_o show_v that_o every_o man_n agree_v with_o the_o roman_a church_n see_v we_o know_v many_o particular_a man_n have_v fall_v into_o error_n but_o we_o affirm_v that_o before_o luther_n there_o be_v no_o visible_a true_a orthodox_n church_n which_o disagree_v from_o the_o roman_a and_o particular_o in_o those_o point_n wherein_o protestant_n disagree_v from_o us._n three_o that_o pag_n 23._o n_o 27._o as_o it_o shall_v be_v you_o accuse_v we_o of_o want_n of_o charity_n even_o while_o you_o be_v in_o the_o act_n of_o give_v the_o same_o ill_a measure_n to_o we_o say_v that_o for_o want_v of_o charity_n to_o protesiant_n we_o always_o suspect_v the_o worst_a of_o they_o and_o what_o great_a want_n of_o charity_n can_v there_o be_v in_o you_o than_o not_o only_o to_o suspect_v but_o to_o pronounce_v and_o proclaim_v in_o print_n that_o we_o want_v charity_n which_o be_v
knowledge_n of_o scripture_n do_v not_o these_o word_n speak_v of_o the_o first_o principle_n among_o christian_n who_o alone_o receive_v scripture_n and_o not_o of_o principle_n in_o metaphysicke_n mathematic_a &c_n &c_n which_o be_v nothing_o to_o the_o purpose_n or_o who_o ever_o dream_v that_o scripture_n can_v be_v the_o most_o know_v in_o all_o science_n see_v it_o be_v not_o know_v by_o any_o natural_a science_n but_o depend_v on_o divine_a revelation_n yea_o do_v not_o ch_z ma_n express_o say_v that_o if_o potter_n mean_v scripture_n to_o be_v one_o of_o those_o principle_n which_o be_v the_o first_o and_o most_o know_v in_o all_o science_n can_v be_v demonstrate_v by_o other_o principle_n he_o suppose_v that_o which_o be_v in_o question_n which_o word_n declare_v that_o scripture_n be_v none_o of_o those_o principle_n which_o be_v most_o know_v either_o in_o all_o natural_a science_n or_o in_o christianity_n 16._o out_o of_o what_o have_v be_v say_v very_o often_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o answer_v and_o retort_v all_o that_o you_o have_v in_o all_o your_o section_n till_o the_o n._n 62._o for_o to_o we_o who_o believe_v the_o church_n of_o god_n to_o be_v infallible_a diversity_n of_o tranlation_n or_o corruption_n can_v bring_v no_o harm_n see_v we_o be_v sure_a that_o the_o church_n can_v neverapprove_v any_o false_a translation_n or_o corruption_n nor_o ground_n upon_o they_o any_o point_n of_o faith_n but_o for_o you_o who_o deny_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n and_o rely_v upon_o scripture_n alone_o false_a translation_n or_o corruption_n may_v import_v no_o less_o than_o the_o loss_n of_o your_o soul_n by_o be_v lead_v into_o some_o damnable_a error_n or_o leave_v in_o ignorance_n of_o some_o point_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n for_o to_o rely_v upon_o scripture_n alone_o and_o yet_o not_o to_o know_v with_o certainty_n what_o scripture_n in_o particular_a be_v canonical_a and_o incorrupt_v be_v to_o take_v away_o all_o certainty_n from_o it_o and_o from_o the_o faith_n of_o protestant_n ground_v on_o it_o alone_o the_o church_n do_v exist_v before_o any_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o must_v last_v although_o we_o shall_v imagine_v that_o all_o scripture_n be_v lose_v as_o some_o say_v it_o happen_v to_o the_o old_a testament_n at_o least_o it_o lay_v hide_v only_o i_o must_v note_v for_o answer_v to_o your_o n._n 58._o and_o 59_o that_o catholic_n object_v to_o protestant_n not_o only_a difference_n of_o translation_n of_o which_o you_o speak_v n._n 59_o but_o that_o one_o of_o they_o most_o deep_o condemn_v the_o translation_n of_o the_o other_o as_o ch_z ma_n pag_n 52._o n._n 16._o set_v down_o at_o large_a as_o for_o the_o vulgate_v translation_n approve_v by_o the_o sacred_a council_n of_o trent_n we_o be_v sure_a that_o it_o can_v contain_v no_o error_n against_o faith_n and_o for_o diverse_a readins_n we_o be_v certain_a that_o the_o church_n can_v never_o approve_v any_o one_o that_o be_v false_a or_o settle_v any_o doctrine_n upon_o it_o as_o i_o say_v even_o now_o but_o to_o treat_v at_o large_a of_o this_o translation_n will_v require_v a_o volume_n and_o be_v not_o for_o this_o time_n for_o my_o or_o even_o your_o purpose_n in_o your_o n._n 61_o you_o pretend_v to_o make_v good_a or_o excuse_n luther_n who_o in_o the_o text_n where_o it_o be_v say_v rom_n 3.28_o we_o account_v a_o man_n to_o be_v justify_v by_o faith_n translate_v justify_v by_o faith_n alone_o and_o in_o stead_n of_o prove_v you_o only_o ask_v what_o such_o great_a difference_n be_v there_o between_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n and_o faith_n alone_o without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n or_o why_o do_v not_o without_z alone_o signify_v all_o one_o with_o alone_o without_o answer_n there_o be_v as_o great_a difference_n between_o those_o two_o proposition_n as_o between_o truth_n and_o falsehood_n that_o a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n be_v a_o truth_n believe_v both_o by_o catholic_n and_o protestant_n for_o both_o of_o we_o believe_v that_o faith_n concurre_v to_o justification_n but_o that_o other_o proposition_n a_o man_n be_v justify_v by_o faith_n alone_o without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n signifyes_n that_o we_o be_v not_o justify_v by_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n but_o by_o faith_n alone_o that_o be_v by_o nothing_o but_o by_o faith_n which_o be_v false_a and_o exclude_v justification_n by_o hope_n charity_n and_o work_n of_o christian_a piety_n and_o according_o luther_n be_v admonish_v of_o this_o shameful_a falsification_n answer_v poenitet_fw-la i_o quod_fw-la non_fw-la addiderim_fw-la &_o illas_fw-la dvas_fw-la voces_fw-la omnibus_fw-la &_o omnium_fw-la uz._n sine_fw-la omnibus_fw-la operibus_fw-la omnium_fw-la legum_fw-la beside_o it_o be_v strange_a you_o will_v defend_v this_o falsification_n of_o alone_o see_v pag_n 406._o n._n 32._o you_o wish_v that_o those_o chapter_n of_o s._n paul_n which_o entreat_v of_o justification_n by_o faith_n without_o the_o work_n of_o the_o law_n be_v never_o read_v in_o the_o church_n but_o when_o the_o 13._o chap_n of_o the_o 1._o epist_n to_o the_o corinth_n concern_v the_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o charity_n shall_v be_v to_o prevent_v misprision_n read_v together_o with_o they_o but_o then_o good_a sr._n what_o danger_n of_o misprision_n must_v it_o need_v be_v when_o people_n shall_v think_v s._n paul_n speak_v of_o faith_n alone_o as_o luther_n make_v he_o speak_v to_o this_o may_v be_v add_v what_o you_o have_v pag_n 218._o n._n 49._o of_o the_o danger_n of_o justification_n by_o faith_n alone_o neither_o i_o nor_o other_o with_o who_o i_o have_v confer_v can_v make_v any_o sense_n of_o your_o other_o work_n or_o why_o do_v not_o without_o etc._n etc._n the_o translation_n of_o zuinglius_fw-la this_o signifyes_n my_o body_n in_o stead_n of_o this_o be_v my_o body_n be_v reject_v by_o protestant_n themselves_o where_o of_o see_v brereley_o tract_n 2._o cap._n 3._o sect._n 9_o subd_v 3._o 17._o in_o your_o n_z 62._o till_o the_o 80_o inclusive_a you_o vain_o triumph_n as_o if_o you_o do_v invincible_o prove_v that_o according_a to_o our_o ground_n man_n salvation_n depend_v upon_o uncertaintye_n all_o which_o i_o have_v answer_v at_o large_a heretofore_o 18._o concern_v your_o n._n 83_o i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o consider_v what_o charity_n maintain_v recite_v out_o of_o dr_n covell_n about_o our_o vulgate_v tanslation_n of_o scripture_n and_o he_o will_v find_v that_o your_o answer_n to_o that_o particular_a be_v but_o a_o vain_a speculation_n and_o that_o he_o suppose_v the_o translation_n which_o be_v call_v the_o bishop_n bible_n and_o be_v approve_v in_o england_n to_o be_v the_o best_a as_o come_v near_o to_o the_o vulgate_v which_o have_v be_v no_o proof_n at_o all_o unless_o he_o have_v also_o suppose_v the_o vulgate_n to_o be_v the_o best_a all_o thing_n consider_v and_o so_o make_v it_o a_o rule_n to_o judge_n of_o the_o goodness_n and_o quality_n of_o that_o english_a translation_n 19_o to_o your_o n._n 86._o i_o answer_v that_o if_o dr_n field_n when_o he_o say_v in_o his_o treatise_n of_o the_o church_n in_o his_o epistle_n dedicatory_a to_o the_o l._n archbishop_n see_v the_o controversye_n of_o religion_n in_o our_o time_n be_v grow_v in_o number_n so_o many_o and_o in_o nature_n so_o intricate_a that_o few_o have_v time_n and_o leisure_n few_o strength_n of_o understanding_n to_o examine_v they_o what_o remain_v for_o man_n desirous_a of_o satisfaction_n in_o thing_n of_o such_o consequence_n but_o diligent_o to_o search_v out_o which_o among_o all_o the_o societye_n in_o the_o world_n be_v that_o bless_a company_n of_o holy_a one_o that_o how_o shall_v of_o faith_n that_o spouse_n of_o christ_n and_o church_n of_o the_o live_a god_n which_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n that_o so_o they_o may_v imbra●e_v her_o communion_n follow_v her_o direction_n and_o rest_n in_o her_o judgement_n if_o i_o say_v dr._n field_n do_v not_o think_v of_o any_o company_n of_o christian_n invest_v with_o such_o authority_n from_o god_n that_o all_o man_n be_v bind_v to_o receive_v their_o decree_n as_o you_o say_v he_o do_v not_o i_o can_v only_o say_v that_o when_o he_o speak_v of_o search_v out_o that_o bless_a company_n of_o holy_a one_o &c_n &c_n he_o speak_v of_o a_o chimaera_n or_o of_o a_o thing_n impossible_a and_o yet_o he_o say_v that_o there_o remain_v for_o man_n desirous_a of_o satisfaction_n in_o thing_n of_o such_o consequence_n only_o this_o that_o they_o search_v out_o which_o among_o all_o the_o societye_n in_o the_o world_n be_v that_o bless_a company_n of_o holy_a one_o &c_n &c_n which_o have_v be_v nothing_o else_o but_o to_o bring_v man_n to_o desperation_n by_o prescribe_v one_o only_a mean_n for_o salvation_n and_o that_o a_o
can_v not_o have_v believe_v she_o in_o any_o one_o and_o so_o there_o have_v be_v no_o mean_n to_o attain_v a_o divine_a infallible_a faith_n and_o that_o after_o the_o canon_n of_o scripture_n be_v persit_v the_o church_n remain_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_a article_n but_o may_v err_v in_o point_n not_o fundamental_a both_o which_o thing_n be_v grant_v by_o protestant_n i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o deny_v but_o that_o the_o conclusion_n deduce_v from_o these_o premise_n must_v be_v that_o she_o lose_v part_n and_o keep_v part_n of_o that_o infallibility_n with_o which_o she_o be_v endue_v before_o scripture_n be_v write_v and_o that_o you_o have_v a_o obligation_n to_o show_v by_o some_o evident_a text_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o church_n by_o the_o write_n thereof_o be_v deprive_v of_o infallibility_n in_o point_n not_o fundamental_a and_o conserve_v with_o infallibility_n in_o fundamental_a article_n beside_o what_o i_o say_v even_o now_o that_o according_a to_o your_o instance_n of_o a_o way_n the_o church_n shall_v have_v be_v deprive_v of_o infallibility_n when_o by_o write_v of_o some_o scripture_n some_o point_n be_v make_v clear_a in_o writing_n which_o before_o be_v believe_v only_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o a_o guide_n that_o be_v the_o church_n and_o now_o consider_v whether_o charity_n maintain_v may_v not_o say_v to_o you_o as_o you_o with_o your_o want_a humility_n speak_v to_o he_o jam_fw-la dic_fw-la posthume_n de_fw-la tribus_fw-la capellis_fw-la 45._o your_o n_z 141._o have_v be_v answer_v in_o my_o confutation_n of_o your_o n._n 124._o concern_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o high_a priest_n and_o jewish_a church_n in_o your_o n._n 142._o you_o say_v to_o charity_n maintain_v for_o particular_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o order_n for_o government_n our_o saviour_n only_o have_v leave_v a_o general_a injunction_n by_o s._n paul_n let_v all_o thing_n be_v do_v decent_o and_o in_o order_n but_o what_o order_n be_v fit_a i._n e._n what_o time_n what_o place_n what_o manner_n &c_n &c_n be_v fit_a that_o he_o hathleft_v to_o the_o discretion_n of_o the_o governor_n of_o the_o church_n but_o if_o you_o mean_v that_o he_o have_v only_o concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n prescribe_v in_o general_n that_o we_o be_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n and_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o church_n to_o determine_v what_o particular_n we_o be_v to_o believe_v the_o church_n be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o aggregation_n of_o believer_n this_o in_o effect_n be_v to_o say_v he_o have_v leave_v it_o to_o all_o believer_n to_o determine_v what_o particular_n they_o be_v to_o believe_v beside_o it_o be_v so_o apparent_o false_a that_o i_o wonder_v you_o can_v content_v yourself_o or_o think_v we_o shall_v be_v content_v with_o a_o bare_a say_n without_o any_o show_n or_o pretence_n of_o proof_n 46._o answer_n my_o hope_n be_v at_o the_o first_o general_a view_n of_o this_o section_n to_o have_v answer_v it_o in_o very_a few_o word_n but_o upon_o particular_a examination_n i_o find_v it_o to_o involve_v so_o many_o point_n of_o moment_n that_o to_o unfold_v they_o will_v require_v some_o little_a more_o time_n and_o pain_n first_o you_o cite_v ch_z ma._n imperfect_o his_o word_n part_n 1._o p._n 69._o n._n 23._o be_v he_o dr._n potter_n affirm_v that_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n retain_v infallibility_n in_o herself_o notwithstanding_o the_o write_n of_o the_o old_a testament_n and_o will_v he_o so_o unworthy_o and_o ●●justly_o deprive_v the_o church_n of_o christ_n of_o infallibility_n by_o reason_n of_o the_o new_a testament_n expecial_o if_o we_o consider_v that_o in_o the_o old_a testament_n law_n ceremony_n rite_n punishment_n judgement_n sacrament_n sacrifice_n &c_n &c_n be_v more_o particular_o and_o minutely_o deliver_v to_o the_o jew_n than_o in_o the_o new_a testament_n be_v do_v our_o saviour_n leave_v the_o determination_n or_o declaration_n of_o particular_n to_o his_o spouse_n the_o church_n which_o therefore_o stand_v in_o need_n of_o infallibility_n more_o than_o the_o jewish_a synagogue_n to_o these_o word_n you_o say_v i_o pray_v walk_v not_o thus_o in_o generality_n but_o tell_v we_o what_o particular_n and_o then_o you_o distinguish_v rite_n and_o ceremony_n and_o order_n for_o government_n from_o matter_n of_o faith_n which_o indeed_o be_v no_o distinction_n if_o the_o matter_n be_v due_o consider_v for_o although_o diverse_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n may_v chance_v to_o be_v of_o themselves_o indifferent_a and_o neither_o forbid_a or_o command_v to_o be_v practise_v or_o omit_v yet_o to_o be_v assure_v that_o indeed_o they_o be_v indifferent_a and_o not_o sinful_a or_o superstitious_a and_o so_o infective_a of_o the_o whole_a church_n we_o need_v some_o infallible_a authority_n and_o particular_o this_o be_v true_a for_o the_o hierarchy_n or_o government_n of_o the_o church_n as_o i_o say_v heretofore_o which_o be_v a_o fundamental_a point_n if_o any_o can_v be_v fundamental_a to_o the_o constitute_v a_o church_n for_o this_o cause_n charity_n maintain_v express_o say_v that_o our_o aviour_n leave_v to_o his_o church_n the_o determination_n or_o declaration_n of_o particular_n but_o you_o think_v fit_a to_o leave_v out_o the_o word_n declaration_n whereas_o we_o can_v certain_o rely_v upon_o the_o determination_n of_o any_o person_n or_o community_n without_o a_o power_n and_o infallibility_n to_o make_v a_o declaration_n that_o the_o thing_n determine_v or_o ordain_v be_v lawful_a and_o so_o a_o determination_n or_o ordination_n must_v suppose_v or_o imply_v in_o fact_n a_o declaration_n do_v not_o you_o pretend_v to_o leave_v we_o for_o our_o superstitious_a rite_n and_o ceremony_n because_o you_o can_v not_o in_o conscience_n conform_v yourselves_o to_o they_o and_o here_o i_o may_v put_v the_o reader_n in_o mind_n of_o the_o word_n which_o i_o cite_v above_o out_o of_o moulin_n epist_n 3_o to_o dr._n andrew_n non_fw-la potui_fw-la dicere_fw-la primatum_fw-la episcoporum_fw-la esse_fw-la juris_fw-la divini_fw-la quin_fw-la ecclesijs_fw-la nostris_fw-la notam_fw-la haereseos_fw-la inurerem_fw-la enimvero_fw-la obsirmare_fw-la animum_fw-la adversus_fw-la ea_fw-la quae_fw-la sunt_fw-la juris_fw-la divini_fw-la &_o deo_fw-la jubentipertinaciter_fw-la refragari_fw-la planè_fw-la est_fw-la haeresis_fw-la sive_fw-la id_fw-la fidem_fw-la attingat_fw-la five_o disciplinam_fw-la thus_o your_o demand_n what_o particular_n charity_n mait●yned_v understand_v be_v answer_v namely_o that_o he_o understand_v all_o particular_n which_o occasion_n may_v require_v to_o be_v ordain_v determine_v and_o declare_v by_o the_o church_n but_o in_o the_o mean_a time_n where_o or_o when_o do_v ch_n ma_n say_v or_o dream_n that_o which_o you_o say_v be_v apparent_o false_a that_o our_o saviour_n have_v only_o concern_v matter_n of_o faith_n prescribe_v in_o general_a that_o ●●●re_v to_o hear_v the_o church_n and_o leave_v it_o to_o the_o church_n to_o determine_v what_o particular_n we_o be_v to_o believe_v your_o conscience_n can_v but_o bear_v witness_n against_o your_o own_o word_n that_o charity_n maintain_v have_v express_v a_o thousand_o time_n our_o doctrine_n that_o we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v whatsoever_o be_v sufficient_o propose_v as_o reveal_v by_o god_n profess_v every_o where_n that_o this_o be_v the_o ground_n for_o which_o he_o avouch_v that_o of_o two_o disagree_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n one_o must_v be_v in_o a_o damnable_a state_n and_o that_o for_o this_o cause_n we_o be_v bind_v to_o believe_v every_o particular_a truth_n contain_v in_o scripture_n or_o define_v by_o the_o church_n which_o be_v million_o and_o therefore_o not_o the_o doctrine_n of_o charity_n maintain_v but_o your_o imputation_n be_v apparent_o false_a yet_o to_o say_v the_o truth_n that_o doctrine_n which_o you_o say_v be_v apparent_o false_a and_o no_o less_o false_o impute_v to_o we_o may_v be_v very_o true_a if_o it_o shall_v stand_v or_o fall_v by_o the_o strength_n only_o of_o the_o argument_n which_o you_o object_n against_o it_o though_o perhaps_o it_o do_v seem_v to_o you_o a_o great_a subtlety_n 47._o the_o church_n say_v you_o be_v nothing_o else_o but_o a_o aggregation_n of_o believer_n this_o in_o effect_n be_v to_o say_v he_o have_v leave_v to_o all_o believer_n to_o determine_v what_o particular_n they_o be_v to_o believe_v to_o which_o i_o may_v answer_v as_o you_o say_v to_o charity_n maintain_v i_o wonder_v you_o will_v impugn_v that_o as_o apparent_o false_a which_o must_v be_v apparent_o true_a if_o the_o ground_n of_o all_o your_o doctrine_n be_v true_a that_o every_o man_n reason_n prescribe_v to_o himself_o and_o determine_v what_o he_o be_v to_o believe_v and_o so_o your_o kind_n of_o church_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o aggregation_n of_o believer_n in_o that_o manner_n it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v leave_v to_o all_o believer_n to_o determine_v what_o particular_n they_o be_v to_o believe_v the_o like_a may_v be_v say_v of_o the_o council_n of_o apostle_n which_o
live_a guide_n to_o they_o who_o have_v and_o believe_v the_o scripture_n whereby_o you_o must_v signify_v that_o to_o those_o who_o either_o have_v not_o scripture_n or_o have_v not_o sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v it_o it_o be_v all_o one_o as_o if_o scripture_n have_v never_o be_v write_v and_o consequent_o that_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la there_o be_v a_o absolute_a necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a guide_n nay_o man_n can_v not_o have_v have_v sufficient_a reason_n to_o believe_v infallible_o the_o scripture_n except_o for_o the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n which_o therefore_o must_v be_v believe_v to_o be_v absolute_o infallible_a before_o any_o scripture_n be_v believe_v which_o be_v direct_o contradictory_n to_o your_o say_n that_o the_o necessity_n of_o a_o infallible_a guide_n be_v ground_v upon_o a_o false_a supposition_n in_o case_n we_o have_v no_o scripture_n for_o contrary_o if_o we_o have_v and_o believe_v scripture_n we_o must_v first_o believe_v a_o infallible_a church_n independent_o of_o that_o supposition_n and_o upon_o which_o that_o supposition_n of_o our_o believe_a scripture_n must_v depend_v 57_o but_o it_o seem_v this_o authority_n of_o s._n irenaeus_n do_v yet_o vex_v you_o and_o therefore_o n._n 146._o 147._o 148._o you_o say_v that_o in_o s._n irenaeus_n his_o time_n all_o the_o church_n be_v at_o a_o agreement_n about_o the_o fundamental_n of_o faith_n which_o unity_n be_v a_o good_a assurance_n that_o what_o they_o so_o agree_v in_o come_v from_o some_o one_o common_a fountain_n and_o they_o have_v no_o other_o than_o of_o apostolic_a preach_v 58._o this_o i_o have_v answer_v heretofore_o and_o tell_v you_o that_o when_o the_o father_n allege_v the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n or_o tradition_n they_o suppose_v the_o church_n to_o be_v absolute_o infallible_a and_o not_o only_o that_o accidental_o she_o teach_v at_o that_o time_n the_o truth_n which_o have_v be_v no_o proof_n but_o a_o mere_a petitio_fw-la principij_fw-la for_o if_o the_o church_n may_v err_v as_o you_o say_v she_o have_v do_v the_o heretic_n against_o who_o the_o father_n write_v will_v easy_o have_v answer_v that_o all_o church_n may_v err_v and_o have_v err_v in_o such_o or_o such_o particular_a point_n and_o how_o can_v you_o or_o any_o protestant_n impugn_v such_o a_o answer_n suppose_v once_o the_o church_n can_v err_v when_o luther_n appear_v he_o forsake_v the_o faith_n and_o communion_n of_o all_o church_n upon_o pretence_n that_o they_o all_o agree_v in_o error_n against_o scripture_n and_o how_o do_v you_o now_o tell_v we_o that_o the_o agreement_n of_o church_n be_v a_o good_a assurance_n that_o what_o they_o so_o agree_v in_o come_v from_o some_o one_o common_a fountain_n and_o they_o have_v no_o other_o but_o apostolical_a preach_v in_o this_o manner_n heretofore_o i_o retort_v against_o you_o the_o say_n which_o you_o allege_v out_o of_o tertullian_n variasse_n debuerat_fw-la &c_n &c_n if_o the_o church_n have_v err_v they_o can_v not_o but_o have_v vary_v but_o that_o which_o be_v one_o among_o so_o many_o can_v be_v error_n but_o tradition_n that_o see_v all_o church_n agree_v in_o a_o belief_n contrary_n to_o the_o faith_n of_o protestant_n we_o must_v affirm_v that_o the_o thing_n which_o be_v one_o among_o so_o many_o can_v not_o by_o error_n but_o tradition_n and_o your_o word_n here_o add_v a_o particular_a strength_n to_o my_o retortion_n while_o you_o say_v that_o the_o agreement_n and_o unity_n of_o church_n about_o the_o fundamental_n of_o faith_n be_v a_o good_a assurance_n that_o what_o they_o so_o agree_v in_o come_v from_o the_o common_a fountain_n of_o apostolic_a preach_v for_o those_o heretic_n may_v have_v answer_v that_o the_o error_n of_o the_o church_n which_o they_o impugn_a be_v not_o fundamental_a as_o we_o have_v prove_v that_o you_o say_v the_o error_n of_o the_o roman_a church_n and_o such_o as_o agree_v with_o she_o when_o luther_n appear_v be_v not_o fundamental_a and_o so_o the_o assurance_n take_v from_o unity_n in_o fundamental_n can_v be_v no_o argument_n against_o they_o beside_o i_o pray_v you_o reflect_v on_o your_o say_n that_o protestant_n depart_v not_o from_o the_o whole_a church_n because_o they_o be_v a_o part_n thereof_o and_o they_o depart_v not_o from_o themselves_o and_o then_o you_o can_v but_o see_v that_o those_o heretic_n in_o s._n irenaeus_n his_o time_n may_v have_v say_v all_o church_n be_v not_o at_o a_o agreement_n about_o matter_n of_o faith_n see_v we_o who_o be_v a_o part_n of_o the_o church_n do_v not_o agree_v with_o the_o rest_n and_o therefore_o the_o agreement_n which_o you_o speak_v of_o be_v of_o no_o force_n against_o we_o but_o you_o must_v prove_v by_o some_o other_o kind_n of_o argument_n that_o our_o doctrine_n be_v false_a just_a as_o protestant_n answer_v we_o when_o we_o object_n against_o they_o the_o agreement_n of_o all_o church_n against_o the_o doctrine_n of_o luther_n when_o he_o first_o appear_v wherefore_o i_o must_v still_o infer_v that_o it_o be_v not_o the_o actual_a or_o accidental_a agreement_n but_o the_o constant_a ground_n thereof_o that_o be_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n that_o must_v assure_v we_o what_o be_v orthodox_n and_o what_o be_v heretical_a doctrine_n moreover_o whereas_o you_o say_v in_o s._n irenaeus_n his_o time_n all_o the_o church_n be_v at_o a_o agreement_n about_o the_o fundamental_n of_o faith_n i_o beseech_v you_o inform_v we_o how_o it_o can_v be_v otherwise_o then_o how_o can_v it_o be_v otherwise_o now_o how_o shall_v it_o be_v otherwise_o for_o the_o time_n to_o come_v or_o for_o any_o imaginable_a time_n than_o that_o all_o church_n be_v at_o a_o agreement_n in_o fundamental_n of_o faith_n see_v you_o profess_v through_o your_o whole_a book_n that_o if_o they_o fail_v in_o fundamental_n they_o cease_v to_o be_v church_n and_o so_o it_o be_v as_o necessary_a for_o all_o church_n to_o agree_v in_o fundamental_n as_o for_o all_o man_n to_o agree_v in_o the_o essence_n of_o man_n and_o you_o may_v as_o well_o have_v say_v that_o at_o s._n irenaeus_n his_o time_n the_o definition_n do_v agree_v or_o be_v all_o one_o with_o the_o definitum_fw-la as_o that_o all_o church_n agree_v in_o fundamental_n if_o therefore_o it_o be_v easy_a to_o receive_v the_o truth_n from_o god_n church_n in_o s._n irenaeus_n his_o time_n as_o he_o affirm_v and_o you_o grant_v it_o will_v be_v no_o less_o easy_a to_o do_v it_o in_o these_o our_o time_n see_v the_o church_n can_v never_o fail_v in_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o so_o it_o be_v easy_a for_o luther_n and_o his_o companion_n to_o have_v receive_v the_o truth_n or_o rather_o to_o have_v retain_v the_o truth_n they_o find_v in_o the_o church_n see_v she_o be_v a_o true_a church_n and_o consequent_o do_v not_o err_v in_o fundamental_a point_n from_o whence_o it_o follow_v that_o when_o s._n irenaeus_n say_v the_o apostle_n have_v most_o full_o deposit_v in_o the_o church_n as_o in_o a_o rich_a store-house_n all_o thing_n belong_v to_o truth_n it_o must_v be_v understand_v that_o she_o can_v but_o keep_v that_o depositum_fw-la sincere_a for_o fundamental_a point_n even_o according_a to_o protestant_n and_o you_o say_v here_o n._n 164._o the_o visible_a church_n shall_v always_o without_o fail_n propose_v so_o much_o of_o god_n revelation_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o bring_v man_n to_o heaven_n for_o otherwise_o it_o will_v not_o be_v the_o visible_a church_n in_o which_o sense_n that_o depositum_fw-la be_v not_o commit_v to_o private_a person_n though_o otherwise_o never_o so_o qualify_v and_o therefore_o all_o that_o you_o have_v n._n 148._o be_v of_o no_o force_n even_o in_o the_o principle_n of_o protestant_n and_o then_o further_o see_v indeed_o any_o error_n against_o divine_a revelation_n be_v damnable_a and_o without_o repentance_n destroy_v salvation_n as_o you_o grant_v it_o be_v impossible_a that_o the_o church_n which_o must_v needs_o enjoy_v all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v you_o even_o now_o say_v the_o visible_a church_n shall_v always_o without_o fail_n propose_v so_o much_o of_o god_n revelation_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o bring_v man_n to_o heaven_n it_o be_v i_o say_v impossiblle_fw-fr that_o the_o church_n can_v fall_v into_o any_o damnable_a error_n but_o must_v be_v universal_o infallible_a which_o be_v unanswerable_o confirm_v by_o your_o doctrine_n that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o know_v what_o point_v in_o particular_a be_v fundamental_a and_o so_o we_o can_v know_v that_o she_o fail_v not_o to_o propose_v so_o much_o of_o god_n revelation_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o bring_v man_n to_o heaven_n unless_o we_o believe_v she_o to_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o point_n of_o faith_n as_o well_o not_o fundamental_a as_o fundamental_a and_o here_o again_o how_o can_v you_o
in_o this_o be_v presumption_n for_o although_o it_o be_v grant_v which_o yet_o be_v very_o false_a that_o they_o differ_v only_o in_o point_n not_o fundamental_a yet_o i_o have_v reason_n to_o find_v fault_n with_o the_o answer_n because_o they_o give_v it_o to_o show_v that_o notwitstanding_n their_o disagreement_n in_o point_n not_o fundamental_a yet_o they_o be_v brethren_n and_o may_v all_o be_v in_o state_n of_o salvation_n which_o to_o affirm_v be_v both_o very_a false_a and_o very_o pernicious_a see_v that_o error_n in_o any_o point_n reveal_v by_o god_n and_o sufficient_o propose_v for_o such_o be_v damnable_a and_o exclude_v salvation_n even_o according_a to_o your_o own_o doctrine_n and_o therefore_o this_o answer_n do_v not_o free_v they_o from_o what_o charity_n maintain_v object_v that_o they_o abuse_v this_o distinction_n and_o to_o this_o you_o shall_v have_v answer_v without_o decline_v it_o by_o impertinent_a diversion_n and_o demand_n the_o other_o part_n of_o your_o dilemma_n be_v this_o if_o you_o say_v they_o do_v not_o so_o that_o be_v differ_v not_o only_o in_o not_o fundamental_n but_o in_o point_n fundamental_a also_o then_o they_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o same_o church_n one_o with_o another_o no_o more_o than_o with_o you_o and_o therefore_o why_o shall_v you_o object_v to_o any_o of_o they_o their_o difference_n from_o each_o other_o any_o more_o than_o to_o yourselves_o their_o more_a and_o great_a difference_n from_o you_o thus_o you_o still_o fly_v a_o direct_a answerto_fw-la ch._n ma._n and_o yet_o grant_v perforce_o all_o that_o he_o desire_v if_o say_v you_o protestant_n differ_v in_o point_n fundamental_a than_o they_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o same_o church_n one_o with_o another_o and_o then_o say_v i_o they_o pernicious_o abuse_v people_n with_o this_o distinction_n to_o persuade_v they_o the_o direct_v contrary_a of_o that_o which_o even_o yourself_o here_o infer_v to_o persuade_v man_n i_o say_v that_o they_o be_v member_n of_o the_o same_o church_n and_o capable_a of_o salvation_n and_o brethren_n though_o according_a to_o your_o supposition_n in_o this_o part_n of_o your_o dilemma_n they_o differ_v in_o point_n fundamental_a and_o this_o be_v that_o to_o which_o you_o shall_v have_v answer_v whether_o they_o do_v not_o abuse_v this_o distinction_n and_o either_o have_v acquit_v they_o or_o do_v ch._n ma._n right_o by_o a_o open_a confession_n of_o his_o say_n true_o they_o abuse_v this_o distinction_n you_o say_v if_o protestant_n differ_v in_o fundamental_n they_o be_v not_o member_n of_o the_o same_o church_n one_o with_o another_o no_o more_o than_o with_o we_o catholic_n if_o this_o beso_fw-es the_o more_o unreasonable_a inconsequent_a and_o unjust_a be_v they_o in_o pretend_v to_o be_v brethren_n one_o to_o another_o and_o yet_o enemy_n to_o we_o whereby_o you_o do_v still_o more_o and_o more_o make_v good_a that_o they_o abuse_v this_o distinction_n in_o pretend_v to_o be_v brethren_n one_o to_o another_o and_o not_o to_o we_o especial_o if_o we_o call_v to_o mind_n that_o many_o of_o their_o chief_a learned_a man_n in_o diverse_a most_o important_a matter_n agree_v with_o we_o against_o other_o protestant_n and_o yet_o they_o must_v be_v brethren_n and_o we_o enemy_n even_o in_o those_o very_a point_n in_o which_o they_o agree_v with_o we_o against_o other_o protestant_n which_o be_v very_o prodigious_a 5._o your_o last_o word_n either_o pass_v my_o understanding_n or_o else_o be_v no_o better_a than_o ridiculous_a you_o say_v to_o we_o why_o shall_v you_o object_v to_o any_o of_o they_o their_o difference_n from_o each_o other_o any_o more_o than_o to_o yourselves_o their_o more_a and_o great_a difference_n from_o you_o for_o my_o part_n i_o can_v draw_v no_o better_a argument_n from_o these_o word_n than_o this_o we_o object_n to_o protestant_n who_o pretend_v to_o be_v brethren_n of_o the_o same_o church_n substance_n of_o faith_n and_o hope_v of_o salvation_n that_o they_o differ_v in_o fundamental_a point_n of_o faith_n for_o as_o i_o say_v you_o speak_v express_o of_o such_o point_n in_o this_o second_o part_n of_o your_o dilemma_n therefore_o we_o may_v as_o well_o object_n to_o ourselves_o their_o more_a and_o great_a difference_n from_o we_o from_o we_o i_o say_v who_o daily_o proclaim_v to_o the_o world_n that_o neither_o they_o nor_o any_o other_o heretic_n be_v our_o brethren_n or_o of_o the_o same_o faith_n church_n and_o hope_v of_o salvation_n how_o can_v we_o object_v to_o ourselves_o a_o thing_n wherein_o we_o proceed_v with_o most_o evident_a consequence_n and_o truth_n if_o indeed_o we_o do_v pretend_v to_o be_v their_o brethren_n than_o we_o may_v and_o aught_o to_o object_n against_o ourselves_o the_o great_a difference_n between_o they_o and_o we_o as_o now_o with_o reason_n we_o make_v such_o a_o objection_n against_o they_o but_o our_o case_n be_v direct_o contrary_a to_o they_o we_o be_v oblige_v to_o proceed_v in_o a_o contrary_a way_n and_o to_o profess_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o communication_n of_o light_n with_o darkeness_n of_o falsehood_n with_o truth_n of_o heresy_n with_o catholic_a doctrine_n 6._o you_o say_v in_o your_o n._n 10._o what_o else_o do_v we_o understand_v by_o a_o unfundamentall_a error_n but_o such_o a_o one_o with_o which_o a_o man_n may_v possible_o be_v save_v i_o ask_v whether_o he_o may_v be_v save_v with_o repentance_n or_o without_o it_o if_o only_o with_o repentance_n you_o make_v no_o difference_n between_o fundamental_a and_o unfundamentall_a point_n because_o with_o repentance_n any_o error_n may_v be_v forgive_v be_v it_o never_o so_o fundamental_a if_o you_o mean_v a_o man_n may_v be_v save_v with_o such_o a_o error_n even_o without_o repentance_n you_o contradict_v yourself_o who_o perpetual_o affirm_v that_o error_n not_o fundamental_a be_v damnable_a in_o themselves_o and_o can_v be_v pardon_v without_o repentance_n and_o i_o have_v prove_v it_o to_o be_v impossible_a that_o any_o culpable_a error_n can_v be_v forgive_v without_o relinquish_a it_o 7._o to_o ywr_v n._n 11.12_o 13.14_o i_o have_v answer_v in_o several_a occasion_n only_o for_o your_o n._n 11._o it_o must_v be_v remember_v that_o i_o have_v prove_v communion_n in_o liturgy_n sacrament_n &c_n &c_n to_o be_v essential_a to_o the_o visible_a church_n which_o make_v your_o similitude_n of_o renounce_v the_o vice_n of_o a_o friend_n and_o yet_o not_o renounce_v a_o friend_n to_o be_v impertinent_a because_o vice_n be_v not_o essential_a to_o a_o friend_n as_o external_a communion_n be_v essential_a to_o the_o church_n which_o therefore_o must_v needs_o be_v forsake_v when_o one_o depart_v from_o that_o which_o be_v essential_a to_o she_o 8._o your_o n._n 15.16.17_o contain_v no_o other_o difficulty_n except_o that_o which_o yourself_o create_v out_o of_o nothing_o while_o you_o fain_o this_o rove_a argument_n and_o then_o impute_v it_o to_o cha_fw-mi ma_fw-fr whosoever_o disbelieve_v any_o thing_n know_v by_o himself_o to_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n impute_v falsehood_n to_o god_n and_o therefore_o err_v fundamental_o but_o some_o protestant_n disbelieve_v thing_n which_o other_o believe_v to_o be_v testify_v by_o god_n therefore_o they_o impute_v falsehood_n to_o god_n and_o err_v fundamental_o but_o why_o do_v you_o seek_v to_o deceive_v the_o ignorant_a with_o such_o sophism_n as_o these_o do_v not_o charity_n maintain_v speak_v express_o of_o the_o case_n wherein_o there_o be_v question_n between_o two_o contradict_v one_o another_o concern_v some_o point_n which_o god_n have_v reveal_v and_o therefore_o one_o of_o the_o litigant_n must_v real_o err_v against_o divine_a revelation_n on_o and_o be_v a_o formal_a heretic_n if_o ignorance_n chance_v not_o to_o excuse_v he_o which_o though_o perhaps_o some_o will_v conceive_v may_v happen_v in_o one_o or_o two_o or_o a_o few_o yet_o to_o believe_v that_o whole_a congregation_n and_o church_n shall_v be_v excuse_v by_o invincible_a ignorance_n notwithstanding_o all_o mean_n of_o knowledge_n that_o god_n fail_v not_o to_o afford_v can_v be_v neither_o discreet_a charity_n nor_o charitable_a discretion_n but_o a_o dangerous_a and_o pernicious_a occasion_n and_o incitement_n to_o sloth_n and_o neglect_v of_o seek_v the_o true_a religion_n upon_o confidence_n of_o find_v a_o lawful_a excuse_n by_o ignorance_n you_o say_v pag_n 21._o if_o any_o protestant_n or_o papist_n be_v betray_v into_o or_o keep_v in_o any_o error_n by_o any_o sin_n of_o his_o will_n as_o it_o be_v to_o be_v fear_v many_o million_o be_v such_o error_n be_v as_o the_o cause_n of_o it_o sinful_a and_o damnable_a and_o pag_n 19_o and_o 20._o you_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o far_o great_a part_n of_o protestant_n fail_v in_o use_v sufficient_a diligence_n to_o find_v the_o truth_n and_o that_o their_o error_n be_v damnable_a therefore_o ch_z ma_n may_v well_o say_v not_o only_o that_o per_fw-la
church_n foundation_n now_o such_o they_o can_v not_o be_v without_o freedom_n from_o etrour_n in_o all_o those_o thing_n which_o they_o deliver_v constant_o be_v certain_a reveal_v truth_n and_o to_o prove_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n you_o allege_v n._n 30_o s._n paul_n say_v build_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o prophet_n fphe_n 2.20_o 43._o i_o reply_v first_o the_o church_n must_v be_v lead_v into_o such_o a_o all_o as_o be_v necessary_a to_o judge_v of_o controversye_n which_o yourself_o pag_n 35._o n._n 7._o confess_v to_o require_v a_o universal_a infallibility_n second_o see_v scripture_n contain_v not_o all_o point_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v the_o church_n must_v be_v endue_v with_o infallibility_n for_o such_o point_n otherwise_o we_o can_v have_v no_o certainty_n concern_v they_o and_o if_o once_o you_o grant_v she_o infallible_a for_o point_n not_o evident_a in_o scripture_n you_o can_v deny_v she_o a_o infallibility_n derive_v not_o from_o evidence_n of_o scripture_n but_o from_o the_o assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o as_o you_o say_v the_o apostle_n be_v universal_o infallible_a because_o the_o church_n be_v build_v on_o they_o so_o every_o christian_a be_v build_v upon_o the_o church_n and_o for_o that_o cause_n she_o must_v be_v universal_o infallible_a three_o we_o be_v not_o say_v to_o be_v build_v upon_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n or_o scripture_n but_o upon_o the_o apostle_n who_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o church_n before_o they_o write_v any_o thing_n by_o their_o preach_n and_o verbum_fw-la traditum_fw-la tradition_n so_o that_o indeed_o this_o text_n ephes_n 2.20_o make_v for_o we_o and_o prove_v that_o we_o be_v build_v on_o the_o unwritten_a word_n and_o may_v have_v be_v so_o though_o no_o scripture_n have_v be_v write_v four_o you_o still_o mistake_v the_o question_n and_o seek_v diversion_n but_o never_o go_v about_o to_o prove_v by_o some_o evident_a text_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o apostle_n may_v not_o be_v limit_v to_o fundamental_a point_n as_o your_o restrain_v to_o such_o point_v the_o general_a promise_n of_o infallibility_n make_v to_o the_o church_n in_o holy_a scripture_n and_o limit_v the_o word_n foundation_n to_o the_o writing_n of_o the_o apostle_n which_o i_o have_v show_v to_o be_v a_o manifest_o untrue_a limitation_n s._n paul_n 1._o tim_n 3._o avouch_v the_o church_n to_o be_v the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n and_o yet_o you_o deny_v she_o to_o be_v universal_o infallible_a how_o then_o can_v you_o prove_v by_o the_o word_n foundation_n which_o cansignify_v no_o more_o than_o the_o pillar_n and_o ground_n of_o truth_n that_o the_o apostle_n can_v err_v in_o any_o point_n but_o the_o church_n may_v yea_o even_o to_o make_v this_o place_n ephes_n 2.20_o clear_a and_o convince_a in_o favour_n of_o the_o apostle_n the_o authority_n of_o the_o church_n be_v necessary_a and_o the_o letter_n alone_o will_v not_o suffice_v if_o you_o will_v regard_v the_o doctrine_n or_o authority_n of_o some_o learned_a prime_a protestant_n and_o therefore_o five_o you_o have_v cause_n to_o reslect_v on_o what_o cornelius_n a_o lapide_fw-la upon_o this_o place_n say_v that_o beza_n and_o not_o he_o alone_o interpret_v upon_o the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n to_o signify_v christ_n who_o be_v the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n prophet_n and_o the_o whole_a church_n and_o he_o beza_n say_v that_o it_o be_v antichristian_a to_o put_v a_o other_o foundation_n for_o no_o man_n can_v put_v a_o other_o foundation_n beside_o that_o which_o be_v put_v jesus_n christ._n if_o this_o exposition_n be_v admit_v the_o say_v text_n ephes_n 2.20_o will_v not_o prove_v that_o the_o apostle_n but_o only_o that_o our_o saviour_n the_o foundation_n of_o the_o apostle_n and_o of_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a nor_o will_v the_o stability_n of_o a_o foundation_n express_v in_o this_o place_n of_o scripture_n belong_v to_o the_o apostle_n and_o albeit_o indeed_o this_o interpretation_n be_v not_o true_a yet_o to_o you_o it_o ought_v not_o to_o seem_v evident_o false_a be_v the_o opinion_n of_o so_o great_a a_o rabbi_n as_o also_o because_o it_o be_v very_o agreeable_a to_o the_o manner_n which_o protestant_o hold_v in_o impugn_v catholic_a doctrine_n when_o for_o example_n they_o argue_v the_o scripture_n say_v we_o have_v a_o advocate_n jesus_n christ_n therefore_o saint_n can_v be_v our_o advocate_n though_o in_o a_o infinite_o low_a degree_n than_o our_o saviour_n be_v especial_o if_o we_o reflect_v that_o it_o be_v say_v of_o our_o saviour_n with_o a_o negative_a or_o exclusive_a particle_n no_o man_n can_v put_v a_o other_o foundation_n whereas_o in_o those_o word_n we_o have_v a_o advocate_n there_o be_v only_o a_o affirmation_n that_o christ_n be_v our_o advocate_n but_o no_o negation_n that_o any_o other_o be_v other_o example_n may_v be_v give_v in_o this_o kind_n if_o this_o be_v a_o place_n for_o it_o we_o do_v therefore_o grant_v that_o the_o apostle_n be_v foundation_n of_o the_o church_n and_o that_o they_o receive_v revelation_n immediate_o from_o our_o saviour_n and_o the_o church_n from_o they_o so_o that_o as_o i_o say_v she_o depend_v on_o they_o not_o they_o on_o she_o and_o you_o wrong_v we_o while_o n._n 30._o in_o your_o first_o sillogisme_n you_o speak_v in_o such_o manner_n as_o the_o reader_n will_v conceive_v that_o we_o make_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n equal_a in_o all_o respect_n to_o that_o of_o the_o apostle_n the_o contrary_a whereof_o all_o catholic_n believe_v and_o prove_v i_o omit_v to_o observe_v that_o you_o take_v occasion_n to_o descant_v upon_o these_o word_n as_o well_o which_o be_v not_o find_v in_o charity_n maintain_v though_o for_o the_o thing_n itself_o he_o may_v have_v use_v they_o your_o n._n 31._o and_o 32._o have_v be_v already_o confute_v at_o large_a and_o the_o word_n of_o dr._n stapleton_n consider_v and_o defend_v with_o small_a credit_n to_o dr._n potter_n and_o you_o 44_o you_o say_v n._n 34._o he_o teach_v the_o promise_n of_o infallibility_n make_v to_o the_o apostle_n to_o be_v verify_v in_o the_o church_n but_o not_o in_o so_o absolute_a a_o manner_n now_o what_o be_v oppose_v to_o absolute_a but_o limit_a or_o restrain_v 45._o answer_n first_o our_o question_n be_v not_o what_o dr._n potter_n say_v but_o what_o he_o do_v or_o can_v prove_v and_o in_o particular_a i_o say_v it_o can_v be_v prove_v by_o any_o evident_a text_n of_o scripture_n that_o the_o word_n which_o he_o confess_v to_o be_v verify_v in_o the_o church_n be_v limit_v to_o fundamental_a point_n in_o respect_n of_o she_o and_o not_o as_o they_o be_v refer_v to_o the_o apostle_n second_o whereas_o you_o say_v what_o be_v oppose_v to_o absolute_a but_o limit_v or_o restrain_v i_o reply_v absolute_a may_v be_v take_v in_o diverse_a sense_n according_a to_o the_o matter_n argument_n or_o subject_n to_o which_o it_o be_v apply_v and_o therefore_o though_o some_o time_n it_o may_v be_v oppose_v to_o limit_v yet_o not_o always_o do_v not_o you_o n._n 33._o oppose_v to_o absolute_a a_o conditional_a moderate_a secondary_a sense_n which_o be_v epitheton_n much_o different_a one_o from_o a_o other_o give_v we_o to_o understand_v that_o you_o be_v too_o resolute_a in_o ask_v what_o be_v oppose_v to_o but_o limit_v see_v more_o thing_n than_o one_o may_v be_v oppose_v to_o it_o what_o logician_n will_v not_o tell_v you_o that_o in_o logic_n not_o limit_v but_o relative_n be_v oppose_v to_o absolute_a and_o we_o may_v also_o say_v that_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o apostle_n be_v absolute_a that_o be_v independent_a and_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n dependent_a as_o the_o effect_n depend_v on_o the_o cause_n and_o so_o be_v not_o absolute_a in_o that_o sense_n but_o have_v a_o relation_n of_o dependence_n to_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o apostle_n as_o to_o its_o cause_n which_o particular_a relation_n the_o apostle_n have_v not_o to_o the_o church_n 46._o you_o say_v also_o n._n 34._o that_o though_o it_o be_v suppose_v that_o god_n have_v oblige_v himself_o by_o promise_n to_o give_v his_o apostle_n infallibility_n only_o in_o thing_n necessary_a to_o salvation_n nevertheless_o it_o be_v utter_o inconsequent_a that_o he_o give_v they_o no_o more_o or_o that_o we_o can_v have_v no_o assurance_n of_o any_o far_a assistance_n that_o he_o give_v they_o especial_o when_o he_o himself_o both_o by_o his_o word_n and_o by_o his_o work_n have_v assure_v we_o that_o he_o do_v assist_v they_o far_o 47._o answer_v i_o know_v not_o to_o what_o purpose_n or_o upon_o what_o occasion_n you_o utter_v these_o word_n only_o i_o be_o sure_a that_o they_o contain_v both_o a_o manifest_a falsehood_n and_o contradiction_n to_o
church_n and_o your_o labour_n and_o pain_n take_v therein_o be_v lose_v in_o order_n to_o any_o other_o effect_n except_o contrary_a to_o your_o desire_n to_o stregthen_v the_o say_n of_o charity_n maintain_v which_o be_v that_o our_o very_a difference_n about_o the_o meaning_n of_o these_o text_n show_v the_o impossibility_n of_o agreement_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n by_o scripture_n alone_o to_o which_o purpose_n he_o set_v down_o what_o sense_n catholic_n give_v they_o and_o the_o different_a interpretation_n of_o protestant_n from_o catholic_n and_o from_o one_o and_o other_o while_o therefore_o you_o profess_v to_o confute_v the_o interpretation_n of_o catholic_n but_o indeed_o impugn_v also_o that_o of_o most_o protestant_n and_o of_o dr._n potter_n in_o particular_a what_o do_v you_o else_o but_o make_v good_a the_o say_v affirmation_n and_o intention_n and_o proof_n of_o cha_fw-mi ma_fw-fr that_o scripture_n alone_o be_v not_o sufficient_a to_o interpret_v itself_o and_o you_o can_v not_o but_o see_v that_o charity_n maintain_v do_v not_o allege_v any_o text_n to_o prove_v the_o church_n infallibility_n but_o only_o to_o show_v the_o difficulty_n of_o scripture_n take_v alone_o by_o those_o example_n which_o he_o allege_v and_o protestant_n interpret_v in_o a_o different_a sense_n from_o catholic_n and_o in_o which_o you_o differ_v from_o both_o so_o that_o even_o by_o your_o disagree_v from_o catholic_n in_o the_o meaning_n of_o those_o place_n you_o in_o fact_n and_o deed_n prove_v the_o truth_n of_o that_o which_o your_o adversary_n affirm_v and_o the_o more_o you_o object_n against_o charity_n maintain_v the_o more_o you_o prejudice_v yourself_o and_o make_v good_a these_o his_o word_n if_o word_n can_v persuade_v you_o that_o in_o all_o controversy_n you_o must_v rely_v upon_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n at_o least_o yield_v your_o assent_n to_o deed_n which_o thing_n consider_v i_o have_v no_o obligation_n at_o all_o to_o examine_v your_o objection_n against_o the_o interpretation_n of_o those_o text_n in_o favour_n of_o the_o church_n infallibility_n for_o which_o purpose_n they_o be_v not_o produce_v by_o charity_n maintain_v but_o only_o to_o prove_v by_o a_o argument_n draw_v from_o experience_n and_o deed_n or_o matter_n of_o fact_n that_o there_o must_v be_v some_o live_a guide_n to_o interpret_v scripture_n and_o you_o be_v wise_a enough_o not_o to_o take_v notice_n of_o this_o argument_n which_o be_v evident_a by_o experience_n but_o dissemble_v the_o matter_n and_o divert_v the_o reader_n with_o discourse_n no_o less_o repugnant_a to_o protestant_n than_o catholics_n and_o therefore_o your_o interpretation_n prove_v nothing_o because_o they_o prove_v too_o much_o even_o in_o the_o common_a ground_n and_o tenet_n of_o protestant_n nevertheless_o by_o way_n of_o supererogation_n i_o will_v examine_v all_o that_o you_o can_v object_v 72._o n._n 69._o you_o bring_v certain_a objection_n in_o a_o different_a letter_n as_o if_o they_o be_v make_v eypress_o by_o ch_z ma_n and_o yet_o i_o find_v they_o not_o in_o he_o whatsoever_o they_o be_v in_o themselves_o then_o n._n 70._o you_o say_v the_o church_n may_v err_v and_o yet_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n not_o privaile_v against_o she_o 73._o answer_v you_o know_v we_o deny_v this_o and_o in_o diverse_a occasion_n have_v give_v good_a reasonsfor_o our_o denial_n and_o what_o can_v be_v more_o inconsistent_a with_o be_v of_o a_o true_a church_n than_o error_n against_o faith_n which_o faith_n be_v the_o most_o essential_a constitutive_a of_o the_o church_n or_o congregation_n of_o faithful_a people_n yourself_o teach_v that_o every_o error_n repugnant_a to_o divine_a revelation_n be_v damnable_a of_o itself_o and_o what_o can_v set_v the_o gate_n of_o hell_n more_o open_a than_o damnable_a sin_n neither_o can_v you_o fly_v to_o ignorance_n whereof_o you_o can_v have_v no_o certainty_n especial_o for_o the_o whole_a universal_a church_n and_o yet_o we_o be_v certain_a by_o our_o saviour_n promise_n that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n can_v prevail_v against_o she_o whereof_o we_o can_v not_o be_v certain_a if_o the_o church_n may_v err_v damnable_o and_o be_v excuse_v only_o by_o ignorance_n which_o as_o i_o say_v be_v a_o uncertain_a hide_a thing_n beside_o the_o church_n be_v appoint_v by_o our_o saviour_n christ_n to_o be_v the_o teacher_n of_o all_o christian_n it_o be_v essential_o necessary_a that_o she_o can_v err_v even_o by_o ignorance_n but_o must_v be_v believe_v to_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o matter_n belong_v to_o faith_n see_v otherwise_o we_o can_v believe_v she_o with_o certainty_n in_o any_o point_n fundamental_a or_o not_o fundamental_a as_o you_o confess_v in_o this_o chapt._n n._n 36._o that_o unless_o the_o church_n be_v infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n we_o can_v rational_o believe_v she_o for_o her_o own_o sake_n and_o upon_o her_o own_o word_n and_o authority_n in_o any_o thing_n for_o a_o authority_n subject_a to_o error_n can_v be_v no_o firm_a or_o stable_a foundation_n of_o my_o belief_n in_o any_o thing_n now_o that_o the_o office_n of_o the_o church_n be_v to_o teach_v all_o christian_n you_o teach_v pag._n 119._o n._n 164._o in_o these_o word_n though_o the_o visible_a church_n shall_v always_o without_o fail_n propose_v so_o much_o of_o god_n revelation_n as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o bring_v man_n to_o heaven_n for_o otherwise_o it_o will_v not_o be_v the_o visible_a church_n yet_o it_o may_v sometime_o add_v to_o this_o revelation_n thing_n superfluous_a nay_o gurtfull_a nay_o in_o themselves_o damnable_a and_o in_o this_o chapter_n n._n 78._o you_o say_v that_o the_o true_a church_n always_o shall_v be_v the_o maintainer_n and_o teacher_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n you_o know_v we_o grant_v and_o must_v grant_v for_o it_o be_v the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v so_o and_o any_o company_n of_o man_n be_v no_o more_o a_o church_n without_o it_o than_o any_o thing_n can_v be_v a_o man_n and_o not_o be_v reasonable_a but_o as_o a_o man_n may_v be_v still_o a_o man_n though_o he_o want_v a_o hand_n or_o a_o eye_n which_o yet_o be_v profitable_a part_n so_o the_o church_n may_v be_v still_o a_o church_n though_o it_o be_v defective_a in_o some_o profitable_a truth_n and_o as_o a_o man_n may_v be_v a_o man_n that_o have_v some_o biles_fw-la and_o botch_n on_o his_o body_n so_o the_o church_n may_v be_v the_o church_n though_o it_o have_v many_o corruption_n both_o in_o doctrine_n and_o practice_n out_o of_o these_o say_n of_o you_o this_o argument_n offer_v itself_o the_o church_n be_v essential_o a_o teacher_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n and_o consequent_o we_o be_v to_o believe_v she_o in_o such_o point_n but_o the_o church_n can_v be_v believe_v in_o necessary_a point_n unless_o we_o believe_v she_o to_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o that_o she_o propose_v as_o matter_n of_o faith_n this_o also_o be_v our_o doctrine_n therefore_o we_o must_v believe_v she_o to_o be_v infallible_a in_o all_o point_n so_o that_o in_o deny_v the_o universal_a infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n you_o contradict_v both_o truth_n and_o your_o own_o assertion_n 74._o and_o here_o i_o must_v put_v you_o in_o mind_n of_o your_o say_n that_o there_o be_v difference_n between_o be_v infallible_a in_o fundamental_n and_o a_o infalllible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_n and_o yet_o we_o have_v hear_v you_o say_v that_o the_o church_n be_v a_o infallible_a teacher_n of_o so_o much_o as_o be_v necessary_a for_o salvation_n and_o what_o be_v to_o be_v a_o infallible_a teacher_n or_o proposer_n but_o to_o be_v a_o infallible_a guide_n and_o then_o further_o see_v you_o say_v p._n 105._o n._n 139._o to_o make_v any_o church_n a_o infallible_a guide_n in_o fundamental_n will_v be_v to_o make_v it_o infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n which_o she_o propose_v and_o require_v to_o be_v believe_v we_o must_v necessary_o infer_v that_o de_fw-fr facto_fw-la the_o church_n which_o be_v a_o infallible_a teacher_n and_o guide_n be_v infallible_a in_o all_o thing_n which_o she_o propose_v and_o require_v to_o be_v believe_v 75._o this_o be_v not_o all_o that_o i_o be_o to_o deduce_v from_o your_o say_v assertion_n you_o say_v in_o this_o same_o page_n and_o number_n no_o church_n can_v possible_o be_v fit_a to_o be_v a_o guide_n but_o only_o a_o church_n of_o some_o certain_a denomination_n to_o which_o proposition_n i_o subsume_v but_o we_o have_v hear_v you_o say_v that_o it_o be_v of_o the_o essence_n of_o the_o church_n to_o be_v a_o teacher_n of_o all_o necessary_a truth_n and_o that_o she_o shall_v always_o without_o fail_n propose_v so_o much_o as_o be_v sufficient_a to_o bring_v man_n to_o heaven_n therefore_o you_o must_v grant_v that_o there_o be_v some_o infallible_a church_n of_o one_o denomination_n which_o be_v the_o direct_a contradictory_n of_o your_o title_n to_o this_o
do_v you_o n._n 81._o say_v to_o he_o of_o the_o same_o word_n see_v you_o modest_o conclude_v from_o hence_o not_o that_o your_o church_n be_v but_o only_o seem_v to_o be_v universal_o infallible_a mean_v to_o yourself_o therefore_o i_o willing_o grant_v your_o conclusion_n but_o of_o the_o intention_n and_o meaning_n of_o charity_n maintain_v in_o allege_v the_o say_v text_n of_o scripture_n for_o the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n we_o have_v say_v enough_o already_o 107._o i_o wonder_v you_o be_v so_o unjust_a as_o to_o say_v we_o prove_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a because_o she_o be_v infallible_a see_v our_o doctrine_n be_v this_o that_o we_o first_o prove_v the_o church_n to_o be_v infallible_a and_o then_o infer_v that_o whatsoever_o she_o teach_v be_v true_a and_o that_o among_o other_o point_n she_o teach_v one_o be_v she_o own_o infallibility_n we_o may_v believe_v it_o even_o for_o her_o authority_n as_o i_o show_v you_o must_v say_v the_o same_o of_o scripture_n if_o once_o you_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v the_o word_n of_o god_n chap_n xiii_o that_o the_o creed_n contain_v not_o all_o point_n necessary_o to_o be_v believe_v in_o answer_n to_o his_o four_o chapter_n 1._o repetition_n of_o the_o same_o thing_n will_v not_o i_o hope_v seem_v either_o needless_a or_o fruiteless_a when_o it_o be_v necessary_a for_o some_o good_a purpose_n and_o effect_n i_o do_v therefore_o entreat_v the_o reader_n now_o as_o i_o have_v do_v heretofore_o not_o to_o look_v on_o the_o word_n and_o argument_n of_o cha_fw-mi ma_fw-fr as_o they_o be_v cite_v and_o abbreviate_v and_o obscure_v and_o in_o a_o word_n disadvantage_v to_o say_v no_o worse_o by_o mr._n chillingworth_n but_o as_o they_o be_v deliver_v by_o the_o author_n himself_o 2._o your_o first_o ten_o number_n or_o section_n i_o omit_v as_o contain_v nothing_o which_o have_v not_o be_v answer_v already_o only_o i_o wish_v you_o have_v declare_v what_o your_o understand_v in_o your_o n._n 2._o by_o these_o word_n every_o one_o of_o the_o fundamental_a rule_n of_o good_a life_n and_o action_n be_v to_o be_v believe_v to_o come_v from_o god_n and_o therefore_o virtual_o include_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n for_o if_o those_o rule_n be_v reveal_v they_o do_v not_o only_o virtual_o include_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o they_o be_v proper_o and_o formal_o object_n and_o article_n of_o divine_a faith_n if_o they_o be_v not_o reveal_v by_o god_n they_o be_v no_o more_o article_n or_o object_n of_o faith_n than_o a_o thing_n not_o visible_a can_v be_v the_o object_n of_o our_o eye_n or_o a_o thing_n without_o sound_n or_o not_o audible_a the_o object_n of_o our_o ear_n etc._n etc._n you_o say_v they_o come_v from_o god_n and_o therefore_o include_v virtual_o a_o article_n of_o faith_n if_o you_o mean_v they_o come_v from_o god_n as_o he_o be_v the_o efficient_a cause_n of_o all_o thing_n that_o be_v common_a to_o all_o creature_n and_o therefore_o not_o sufficient_a to_o include_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n if_o they_o come_v from_o god_n as_o reveal_v and_o testify_v they_o to_o be_v true_a they_o be_v formal_a object_n of_o faith_n as_o i_o say_v and_o do_v not_o only_o virtual_o include_v a_o article_n of_o faith_n but_o it_o may_v be_v fear_v that_o in_o these_o word_n there_o lurk_v some_o hide_a poison_n as_o if_o the_o rule_n of_o good_a life_n and_o action_n as_o they_o be_v know_v by_o the_o light_n of_o natural_a reason_n and_o not_o as_o they_o be_v reveal_v and_o so_o become_v formal_a object_n of_o faith_n be_v sufficient_a to_o direct_v our_o life_n for_o bring_v we_o to_o salvation_n and_o that_o no_o supernatural_a knowledge_n be_v necessary_a no_o less_o obscure_a be_v your_o other_o word_n that_o fundamental_a doctrine_n of_o faith_n be_v such_o as_o though_o they_o have_v influence_n upon_o our_o life_n as_o every_o essential_a doctrine_n of_o christianity_n have_v yet_o we_o be_v command_v to_o believe_v they_o and_o not_o to_o do_v they_o for_o by_o these_o word_n how_o do_v you_o distinguish_v credenda_fw-la from_fw-la agenda_fw-la if_o both_o have_v influence_n upon_o our_o life_n and_o in_o neither_o of_o they_o the_o act_n of_o our_o understanding_n or_o assent_n be_v that_o which_o we_o do_v but_o only_o it_o be_v the_o act_n which_o direct_v we_o to_o do_v other_o thing_n and_o so_o have_v influence_n upon_o our_o life_n but_o these_o thing_n i_o omit_v and_o come_v to_o 3._o your_o n._n 11._o wherein_o you_o say_v to_o c_o ma_n your_o distinction_n between_o point_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v and_o necessary_a not_o to_o be_v disbelieved_a be_v more_o subtle_a than_o sound_n a_o distinction_n without_o a_o difference_n there_o be_v no_o point_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v which_o be_v not_o necessary_a not_o to_o be_v disbelieved_a answer_n this_o last_o be_v very_o true_a for_o in_o that_o case_n there_o concur_v both_o the_o affirmative_a precept_n of_o exercice_v a_o explicit_a act_n of_o faith_n and_o the_o negative_a of_o not_o disbelieve_v any_o truth_n reveal_v by_o god_n but_o that_o which_o you_o add_v nor_o no_o point_n to_o any_o man_n at_o any_o time_n in_o any_o circumstance_n necessary_a not_o to_o be_v disbelieved_a but_o it_o be_v to_o the_o same_o man_n at_o the_o same_o time_n in_o the_o same_o circumstance_n necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v be_v manifest_o untrue_a for_o when_o it_o be_v propose_v to_o one_o understanding_n that_o god_n have_v reveal_v some_o truth_n he_o may_v true_o judge_v that_o there_o be_v no_o affirmative_a precept_n which_o oblige_v he_o at_o that_o time_n to_o exercise_v any_o act_n of_o faith_n about_o that_o partioular_a object_n and_o therefore_o may_v resolve_v to_o abstain_v or_o forbear_v to_o produce_v any_o such_o assent_n of_o faith_n but_o think_v of_o something_o else_o and_o may_v have_v reason_n to_o do_v so_o u.g._n if_o some_o act_n of_o a_o other_o virtue_n be_v more_o press_v at_o that_o time_n and_o yet_o he_o shall_v sin_v damnable_o if_o he_o do_v positive_o dissent_v and_o so_o at_o the_o same_o time_n it_o may_v be_v necessary_a not_o to_o disbelieve_v some_o truth_n and_o yet_o not_o be_v necessary_a actual_o to_o believe_v it_o it_o be_v dispute_v in_o the_o school_n whether_o the_o will_n can_v stay_v the_o understanding_n from_o yield_n assent_n to_o a_o conclusion_n deduce_v evident_o from_o evident_a premise_n but_o no_o man_n can_v doubt_v whether_o the_o will_n may_v draw_v our_o understanding_n from_o a_o positive_a actual_a assent_n to_o the_o object_n of_o faith_n which_o be_v so_o obscure_a that_o they_o require_v a_o pious_a affection_n in_o the_o will_n which_o therefore_o may_v dissent_v and_o be_v so_o difficult_a that_o for_o every_o act_n of_o faith_n we_o need_v the_o particular_a supernatural_a assistance_n of_o the_o holy_a ghost_n and_o than_o what_o wonder_n be_v it_o that_o we_o may_v abstain_v from_o do_v that_o which_o be_v not_o in_o our_o sole_a power_n to_o perform_v and_o to_o which_o we_o be_v force_v neither_o metaphysical_o as_o i_o have_v show_v nor_o moral_o because_o we_o suppose_v there_o be_v no_o affirmative_a precept_n to_o exercise_v such_o a_o act_n of_o faith_n in_o those_o circumstance_n it_o seem_v you_o have_v a_o mind_n against_o all_o divine_n to_o make_v no_o difference_n between_o the_o affirmative_a and_o negative_a precept_n of_o faith_n whereof_o cha._n ma._n speak_v part_v 1_o chap_n 3._o n._n 2._o and_o what_o he_o say_v may_v be_v apply_v to_o our_o present_a purpose_n and_o who_o will_v say_v that_o every_o one_o be_v always_o oblige_v to_o be_v exercise_v a_o positive_a act_n of_o faith_n upon_o all_o those_o object_n which_o he_o can_v never_o disbelieve_v may_v not_o a_o man_n reading_z or_o hear_v some_o part_n of_o scripture_n only_o conceive_v it_o per_fw-la primam_fw-la apprehensionem_fw-la without_o affirm_v or_o deny_v as_o when_o one_o learn_v without_o book_n or_o only_o consider_v the_o phrase_n or_o write_v as_o at_o a_o copy_n and_o the_o like_a 4._o you_o continue_v your_o discourse_n and_o say_v to_o charity_n maintain_v yet_o that_o which_o i_o believe_v you_o will_v have_v say_v i_o acknowledge_v true_a that_o many_o point_n which_o be_v not_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v absolute_o be_v yet_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v upon_o a_o supposition_n that_o they_o be_v know_v to_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n that_o be_v become_v then_o necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v when_o they_o be_v know_v to_o be_v divine_a revelation_n but_o ch._n ma_n have_v no_o reason_n to_o accept_v as_o a_o favour_n this_o explication_n of_o you_o which_o contain_v false_a doctrine_n as_o if_o all_o truth_n become_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v by_o a_o explicit_a actual_a belief_n when_o they_o be_v know_v to_o be_v divine_a revelation_n
understanding_n or_o primam_fw-la apprehensionem_fw-la and_o judicium_fw-la never_o the_o less_o if_o you_o be_v settle_v in_o a_o resolution_n to_o defend_v that_o man_n be_v out_o of_o their_o right_a wit_n may_v believe_v contradictory_n i_o say_v it_o import_v nothing_o for_o our_o present_a purpose_n see_v i_o hope_v you_o will_v not_o say_v that_o the_o fact_n of_o such_o man_n can_v concern_v dr._n usher_n to_o who_o cha_fw-mi ma_fw-fr object_v that_o some_o word_n of_o he_o do_v imply_v a_o contradiction_n last_o be_v please_v to_o reflect_v that_o aristotle_n speak_v of_o express_v and_o know_v contradiction_n and_o yourself_o confess_v that_o it_o be_v difficult_a and_o man_n ought_v not_o to_o believe_v such_o and_o therefore_o this_o first_o reason_n of_o you_o prove_v either_o too_o much_o or_o nothing_o at_o all_o and_o so_o prove_v nothing_o at_o all_o because_o it_o prove_v too_o much_o and_o i_o wonder_v how_o you_o say_v in_o your_o n._n 46._o pag_n 215._o though_o there_o can_v be_v no_o damnable_a heresy_n unless_o it_o contradict_v some_o necessary_a truth_n yet_o there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n but_o the_o same_o man_n may_v at_o once_o believe_v this_o heresy_n and_o this_o truth_n because_o there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n that_o the_o same_o man_n at_o the_o same_o time_n shall_v believe_v contradiction_n let_v we_o suppose_v this_o to_o be_v as_o it_o be_v a_o damnable_a heresy_n christ_n be_v not_o the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n the_o contradictory_n be_v christ_n be_v the_o saviour_n of_o the_o world_n which_o be_v a_o formal_a contradiction_n and_o express_v in_o term_n to_o which_o it_o seem_v by_o these_o word_n you_o may_v assent_v and_o consequent_o to_o express_v contradiction_n which_o yet_o n._n 47._o you_o be_v force_v to_o moderate_v but_o when_o you_o say_v there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n but_o the_o same_o man_n may_v at_o once_o believe_v this_o heresy_n and_o this_o truth_n and_o add_v this_o reason_n or_o proof_n because_o there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n that_o the_o same_o man_n at_o the_o same_o time_n shall_v believe_v contradiction_n you_o must_v give_v i_o leave_v to_o speak_v and_o say_v that_o you_o utter_v plain_a nonsense_n yourself_o talk_v of_o some_o nonsense_n distinction_n in_o prove_v that_o one_o may_v believe_v contradiction_n because_o there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n that_o one_o believe_v contradiction_n which_o causal_n suppose_v that_o we_o can_v not_o believe_v they_o if_o it_o be_v a_o contradiction_n to_o believe_v they_o and_o consequent_o that_o we_o can_v believe_v contradiction_n and_o yet_o in_o this_o very_a sentence_n you_o say_v there_o be_v no_o contradiction_n but_o the_o same_o man_n at_o the_o same_o time_n shall_v believe_v contradiction_n 24._o your_o second_o reason_n be_v deliver_v in_o these_o word_n they_o which_o believe_v there_o be_v no_o certainty_n in_o reason_n must_v believe_v that_o contradiction_n may_v be_v true_a for_o otherwise_o there_o will_v be_v certainty_n in_o this_o reason_n this_o contradict_v truth_n therefore_o it_o be_v false_o but_o there_o be_v now_o divers_a in_o the_o world_n who_o believe_v there_o be_v no_o certainty_n in_o reason_n therefore_o there_o be_v divers_a in_o the_o world_n who_o believe_v contradiction_n may_v be_v true_a 25._o answer_v 1._o certain_o if_o there_o be_v any_o certainty_n in_o reason_n it_o be_v in_o this_o that_o contradiction_n can_v be_v true_a and_o see_v you_o hold_v this_o not_o only_o not_o certain_o true_a but_o to_o be_v false_a it_o be_v clear_a that_o you_o be_v one_o of_o those_o who_o believe_v there_o be_v no_o certainty_n in_o reason_n and_o consequent_o you_o can_v be_v certain_a even_o of_o your_o own_o assertion_n that_o contradiction_n may_v be_v true_a and_o so_o while_o you_o draw_v a_o argument_n from_o those_o who_o believe_v there_o be_v no_o certainty_n in_o reason_n you_o deprive_v your_o own_o assertion_n of_o all_o certainty_n 2._o if_o once_o you_o swallow_v that_o absurdity_n of_o the_o truth_n of_o contradictorye_n when_o you_o say_v this_o contradict_v truth_n therefore_o it_o be_v false_a the_o answer_n may_v be_v that_o it_o may_v contradict_v truth_n and_o yet_o not_o be_v false_o but_o true_a because_o contradiction_n may_v be_v true_a and_o i_o beseech_v you_o tell_v we_o whether_o you_o believe_v that_o whatsoever_o contradict_v truth_n be_v false_o if_o you_o say_v it_o be_v not_o false_o you_o speak_v absurd_o for_o what_o be_v falsehood_n but_o a_o error_n against_o truth_n if_o you_o say_v it_o must_v be_v false_a you_o overthrow_v your_o own_o doctrine_n that_o contradiction_n may_v be_v true_a because_o in_o contradiction_n one_o part_n must_v be_v opposite_a to_o a_o truth_n and_o consequent_o fall_v 3._o that_o conceit_n that_o there_o be_v no_o certainty_n in_o reason_n be_v false_a and_o injurious_a to_o mankind_n you_o can_v ground_v on_o it_o any_o truth_n except_o this_o that_o it_o be_v a_o very_a fit_a principle_n for_o your_o absurd_a conclusion_n that_o contradictorye_n may_v be_v true_a and_o that_o if_o you_o believe_v it_o to_o be_v true_a you_o be_v in_o apernicious_a error_n if_o you_o hold_v it_o to_o be_v false_o why_o do_v you_o urge_v it_o against_o we_o this_o sceptic_a doctrine_n 4._o your_o argument_n prove_v that_o one_o may_v assent_v not_o only_o to_o contradictory_n not_o perceive_v to_o be_v such_o but_o to_o they_o express_v in_o plain_a term_n because_o otherwise_o there_o will_v be_v certainty_n in_o this_o reason_n these_o be_v express_a contradictorye_n therefore_o they_o can_v both_o be_v true_a thus_o still_o your_o reason_n either_o prove_v nothing_o at_o all_o or_o against_o yourself_o 26._o your_o three_o reason_n be_v they_o which_o do_v captivate_v their_o understanding_n to_o the_o belief_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o to_o their_o understanding_n seem_v irreconciliable_a contradiction_n may_v as_o well_o believe_v real_a contradiction_n for_o the_o difficulty_n of_o believe_v arise_v not_o from_o their_o be_v repugnant_a but_o for_o their_o seem_a to_o be_v so_o but_o you_o do_v captivate_v your_o understanding_n to_o the_o belief_n of_o those_o thing_n which_o seem_v to_o your_o understanding_n irreconciliable_a contradiction_n therefore_o it_o be_v as_o possible_a and_o easy_a for_o you_o to_o believe_v those_o that_o indeed_o be_v so_o 27._o answer_n 1._o what_o be_v this_o but_o to_o undermine_v christian_a religion_n wherein_o we_o submit_v and_o captivate_v our_o understanding_n to_o mysterye_n which_o to_o humane_a reason_n seem_v impossible_a and_o for_o that_o very_a cause_n we_o be_v teach_v to_o captivate_v our_o understanding_n to_o the_o obedience_n of_o christ_n and_o now_o you_o tell_v all_o christian_n that_o by_o do_v so_o they_o believe_v contradiction_n as_o well_o as_o if_o they_o believe_v real_a contradiction_n which_o jew_n turk_n pagan_n and_o all_o man_n in_o their_o right_a wit_n know_v to_o be_v absurd_a and_o impossible_a and_o you_o confess_v to_o be_v unreasonable_a and_o very_o difficult_a speak_v of_o express_a contradiction_n as_o here_o you_o speak_v of_o such_o since_o you_o express_o speak_v of_o thing_n which_o to_o one_o understanding_n seem_v irreconciliable_a contradiction_n i_o desire_v the_o reader_n to_o look_v upon_o chr_n ma_n chap._n 9_o concern_v this_o matter_n 2._o therefore_o as_o in_o other_o reason_n so_o in_o this_o see_v you_o speak_v of_o contradiction_n express_v in_o term_n you_o contradict_v what_o yourself_o afterward_o n._n 47._o teach_v 3._o the_o necessity_n that_o all_o christian_n acknowledge_v of_o submit_v our_o understanding_n to_o faith_n arise_v from_o this_o that_o they_o seem_v to_o contain_v contradiction_n which_o can_v be_v no_o reason_n require_v the_o captivate_a our_o reason_n if_o they_o do_v not_o suppose_v that_o contradiction_n can_v bettue_n and_o therefore_o this_o very_a reason_n which_o you_o bring_v to_o prove_v that_o man_n may_v believe_v contradiction_n must_v suppose_v they_o can_v believe_v they_o for_o if_o they_o can_v it_o will_v cost_v they_o little_a to_o believe_v that_o which_o to_o they_o seem_v a_o contradiction_n 4._o you_o say_v it_o be_v as_o possible_a and_o as_o easy_a for_o we_o to_o believe_v those_o thing_n that_o indeed_o be_v real_a contradiction_n as_o to_o believe_v those_o thing_n which_o to_o our_o unaerstanding_n seem_v contradiction_n which_o word_n suppose_v that_o it_o be_v both_o possible_a and_o easy_a for_o we_o to_o believe_v those_o thing_n which_o to_o we_o seem_v contradiction_n and_o yet_o n._n 47._o you_o say_v it_o be_v very_o difficult_a for_o a_o man_n in_o his_o right_a wit_n to_o believe_v express_a contradiction_n into_o how_o many_o contradiction_n do_v you_o fall_v while_o you_o treat_v of_o conradiction_n 5._o your_o argument_n scarce_o deserve_v any_o answer_n for_o who_o be_v ignorant_a that_o contradiction_n must_v involve_v two_o side_n one_o affirm_v the_o other_o deny_v and_o therefore_o
this_o one_o article_n of_o the_o church_n be_v too_o short_a for_o a_o creed_n or_o abridgement_n of_o faith_n and_o must_v have_v be_v enlarge_v by_o some_o creed_n cathecisme_n etc._n etc._n and_o as_o potter_n and_o you_o limit_v the_o promise_n of_o our_o saviour_n to_o the_o church_n that_o the_o gate_n of_o hell_n shall_v not_o prevail_v against_o it_o to_o fundamental_a point_n or_o to_o a_o sufficient_a but_o not_o a_o certain_o effectual_a assistance_n or_o some_o other_o way_n the_o same_o will_v you_o have_v do_v though_o he_o have_v specify_v the_o roman_a church_n 78._o your_o last_o n._n 84._o contain_v nothing_o in_o effect_n beside_o what_o you_o and_o potter_n have_v say_v and_o have_v be_v confute_v already_o we_o deny_v not_o but_o that_o the_o creed_n contain_v all_o fundamental_a point_n in_o the_o sense_n which_o i_o have_v declare_v more_o than_o once_o and_o which_o catholic_n writer_n intend_v when_o they_o say_v it_o contain_v all_o fuch_n article_n and_o the_o reader_n will_v receive_v further_a satisfaction_n by_o peruse_v the_o n._n 26._o of_o ch_n ma._n as_o it_o be_v deliver_v by_o himself_o as_o also_o he_o will_v find_v that_o you_o have_v omit_v some_o point_n of_o importance_n which_o ch._n ma._n have_v set_v down_o n._n 27._o as_o in_o particular_a that_o the_o very_a council_n of_o nice_n which_o say_v whitg●ft_n in_o his_o defence_n pag._n 3●0_n be_v of_o all_o wise_a and_o learned_a man_n reverence_v esteem_v and_o embrace_v next_o unto_o the_o scripture_n themselves_o decree_v that_o to_o those_o that_o be_v choose_v to_o the_o ministry_n unmarried_a it_o be_v not_o lawful_a to_o take_v any_o wife_n afterward_o be_v affirm_v by_o protestant_n last_o in_o answer_n to_o the_o direction_n n._n 33._o you_o undo_v all_o that_o dr._n potter_n and_o you_o have_v do_v in_o labour_v to_o prove_v that_o the_o creed_n contain_v all_o necessary_a article_n of_o simple_a belief_n for_o thus_o you_o speak_v the_o grant_v of_o this_o principle_n that_o all_o thing_n necessary_a to_o s●lvation_n be_v evident_o contain_v in_o scripture_n plain_o render_v the_o whole_a disppute_n touch_v the_o creed_n unnecessary_a for_o if_o all_o necessary_a thing_n of_o all_o sort_n whether_o of_o simple_a belief_n or_o practice_n be_v confess_v to_o be_v clear_o contain_v in_o scripture_n what_o import_v it_o whether_o those_o of_o one_o sort_n be_v contain_v in_o the_o creed_n chap_n fourteen_o the_o answer_n to_o his_o five_o chapter_n about_o schism_n 1._o omit_v to_o say_v any_o thing_n by_o way_n of_o preface_n and_o introduction_n your_o n._n 1.2.3.4.5.6.7.8.9_o have_v be_v answer_v particular_o and_o at_o large_a in_o my_o chapter_n 7._o the_o cavil_v which_o n._n 10.11.12_o you_o use_v in_o avoid_v the_o authority_n of_o some_o father_n which_o ch_z ma_n allege_a n._n 8._o to_o prove_v that_o it_o can_v never_o be_v lawful_a to_o separate_v from_o the_o church_n do_v prove_v more_o and_o more_o the_o impossibility_n of_o decide_v controversy_n by_o scripture_n or_o any_o one_o writing_n whosoever_o consider_v the_o place_n cite_v by_o ch._n ma._n out_o of_o s._n austin_n cont_n parmen_fw-la l._n 2._o c._n 11._o there_o be_v no_o just_a necessity_n to_o divide_v unity_n will_v find_v that_o those_o word_n must_v be_v universal_a and_o serve_v for_o the_o major_a proposition_n to_o prove_v that_o the_o donatist_n can_v have_v no_o necessity_n to_o divide_v themselves_o from_o the_o church_n of_o which_o division_n he_o say_v that_o it_o appear_v non_fw-la esse_fw-la quicquam_fw-la gravius_fw-la sacrilegio_fw-la schismatis_fw-la and_o if_o s._n augustine_n proposition_n be_v not_o universal_a his_o argument_n have_v be_v but_o petitio_fw-la princicipij_fw-la take_v for_o grant_v that_o which_o be_v in_o controversy_n namely_o whether_o the_o donatist_n have_v just_a cause_n to_o depart_v from_o the_o church_n so_o that_o indeed_o those_o word_n of_o s._n austin_n there_o be_v no_o just_a necessity_n to_o divide_v unity_n must_v suppsose_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v nor_o that_o man_n can_v receive_v any_o spiritual_a hurt_n by_o her_o doctrine_n and_o that_o she_o can_v neither_o do_v nor_o approve_v ill_o all_o which_o have_v be_v declare_v heretofore_o both_o for_o the_o matter_n itself_o and_o for_o the_o meaning_n of_o s._n austin_n in_o divers_a other_o say_n of_o he_o but_o it_o seem_v you_o want_v better_a matter_n when_o you_o tell_v we_o of_o want_n of_o diligence_n in_o quote_v the_o 62._o ch._n of_o that_o book_n of_o s._n austin_n which_o have_v but_o 23._o in_o it_o and_o when_o you_o say_v that_o the_o word_n which_o be_v indeed_o in_o the_o 11._o chapter_n be_v not_o infer_v out_o of_o any_o such_o promise_n as_o ch._n ma._n pretend_v for_o as_o late_o you_o do_v persecute_v the_o printer_n for_o that_o which_o ch._n ma._n have_v put_v among_o the_o errata_fw-la so_o here_o you_o note_v that_o which_o ch._n ma._n himself_o cite_v right_a n._n 21._o as_o every_o one_o may_v see_v neither_o be_v it_o any_o better_a than_o ridiculous_a for_o you_o to_o say_v that_o the_o word_n of_o s._n austin_n be_v not_o infer_v out_o of_o any_o such_o premise_n as_o ch._n ma._n pretend_v see_v he_o neither_o pretend_v nor_o mention_n any_o other_o premise_n beside_o that_o which_o he_o in_o the_o immediate_o precedent_a number_n have_v say_v out_o of_o the_o holy_a father_n that_o schism_n be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n and_o i_o beseech_v you_o from_o whence_o can_v s._n austin_n infer_v that_o there_o can_v be_v no_o just_a necessity_n to_o divide_v unity_n except_o from_o a_o supposition_n that_o schism_n be_v a_o grievous_a sin_n or_o as_o he_o speak_v here_o non_fw-la esse_fw-la quicquam_fw-la gravius_fw-la sacrilegio_fw-la schismatis_fw-la but_o it_o be_v a_o sign_n you_o be_v sink_v when_o you_o be_v glad_a to_o take_v hold_n of_o any_o thing_n be_v it_o never_o so_o weak_a 2._o the_o same_o answer_n serve_v for_o your_o evasion_n to_o the_o word_n of_o s._n irenaeus_n count_v heraet_fw-la lib._n 4._o cap._n 6●_n they_o can_v make_v any_o so_o important_a reformation_n as_o the_o ●ll_a of_o the_o schism_n be_v pern●●ous_a which_o must_v suppose_v that_o the_o church_n can_v err_v in_o matter_n of_o faith_n whether_o they_o be_v great_a or_o little_a in_o their_o own_o nature_n and_o therefore_o he_o say_v express_o god_n will_v judge_v all_o those_o who_o be_v out_o of_o truth_n that_o be_v who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n judicabit_fw-la omnes_fw-la eos_fw-la quisunt_fw-la extra_fw-la veritatem_fw-la id_fw-la est_fw-la qui_fw-la sunt_fw-la extra_fw-la ecclesiam_fw-la and_o therefore_o much_o more_o will_v he_o judge_v man_n if_o for_o small_a matter_n they_o shall_v part_v from_o the_o church_n and_o you_o see_v he_o suppose_v all_o to_o be_v out_o of_o the_o truth_n who_o be_v out_o of_o the_o church_n which_o be_v not_o true_a if_o the_o church_n can_v deliver_v false_a doctrine_n for_o so_o one_o may_v be_v in_o the_o church_n and_o not_o in_o the_o truth_n the_o example_n of_o the_o quartodecimani_n who_o by_o the_o ancient_a father_n be_v reckon_v among_o heretic_n make_v direct_o against_o yourself_o neither_o do_v it_o import_n that_o the_o controversy_n about_o keep_v easter_n may_v seem_v to_o be_v only_o concern_v a_o circumstance_n of_o time_n and_o not_o immediate_o and_o express_o of_o a_o reveal_v truth_n for_o indeed_o to_o say_v it_o be_v necessary_a to_o keep_v easter_n as_o the_o jew_n do_v for_o the_o circumstance_n of_o time_n be_v a_o formal_a pernicious_a heresy_n no_o less_o then_o to_o bring_v in_o a_o necessity_n of_o observe_v othr_fw-mi rite_n of_o the_o jewish_a law_n and_o so_o the_o word_n which_o you_o allege_v out_o of_o petavius_n make_v nothing_o for_o you_o against_o us._n for_o this_o cause_n the_o observation_n of_o easter_n at_o a_o certain_a time_n may_v be_v tolerate_v as_o some_o rite_n of_o the_o jew_n be_v till_o they_o be_v affirm_v to_o be_v necessary_a after_o which_o time_n they_o be_v to_o be_v repute_v not_o only_o dead_a but_o deadly_a and_o so_o will_v that_o custom_n of_o keep_v easter_n have_v be_v after_o it_o be_v pretend_v to_o be_v keep_v as_o necessary_a of_o which_o point_n and_o of_o the_o excommunication_n inflict_v by_o holy_a pope_n victor_n ch._n ma._n have_v speak_v sufficient_o in_o his_o 2._o part_n 3._o your_o answer_n to_o the_o word_n of_o s._n denis_n of_o alexandria_n be_v evident_o a_o mere_a shift_n for_o to_o say_v as_o he_o do_v apud_fw-la eusebium_fw-la hist_n eccles_n l._n 6._o cap._n 25._o all_o thing_n shall_v rather_o be_v endure_v then_o to_o consent_v to_o the_o division_n of_o the_o church_n of_o god_n must_v necessary_o suppose_v that_o it_o can_v never_o be_v lawful_a to_o part_v from_o the_o church_n and_o if_o it_o be_v lawful_a to_o do_v so_o it_o can_v not_o universal_o be_v a_o
cause_n now_o yourself_o here_o n._n 9_o confess_v that_o without_o credible_a reason_n and_o inducement_n our_o choice_n even_o of_o the_o true_a faith_n be_v not_o to_o be_v commend_v as_o prudent_a but_o to_o be_v condemn_v of_o rashness_n and_o levity_n i_o say_v a_o act_n of_o faith_n must_v always_o be_v prudent_a not_o that_o every_o one_o must_v be_v able_a to_o give_v to_o other_o a_o account_n of_o his_o faith_n as_o you_o interpret_v the_o matter_n but_o that_o the_o capacity_n of_o the_o believer_n and_o all_o other_o circumstance_n consider_v the_o belief_n of_o such_o a_o man_n be_v indeed_o prudent_a i_o wonder_v what_o can_v move_v you_o n._n 10._o to_o say_v to_o charity_n maintain_v it_o be_v against_o truth_n and_o charity_n to_o say_v as_o you_o do_v that_o they_o with_o can_v do_v so_o that_o be_v can_v give_v a_o reason_n and_o account_v of_o their_o faith_n either_o be_v not_o at_o all_o or_o to_o no_o purpose_n true_a believer_n whereas_o charity_n maintain_v have_v no_o such_o matter_n 8._o in_o your_o n._n 11.12_o you_o say_v it_o be_v not_o heresy_n to_o oppose_v au_o truth_n propose_v by_o the_o church_n but_o only_o such_o a_o truth_n as_o be_v a_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n 9_o answer_n you_o have_v no_o constancy_n in_o your_o doctrine_n here_o you_o say_v heresy_n can_v be_v without_o error_n against_o some_o essential_a part_n of_o the_o gospel_n of_o christ_n and_o every_o error_n against_o any_o doctrine_n reveal_v by_o god_n be_v not_o a_o damnable_a heresy_n unless_o it_o be_v reveal_v public_o plain_o with_o a_o command_n that_o all_o shall_v believe_v it_o by_o essential_a i_o suppose_v you_o mean_v necessary_a and_o fundamental_a as_o contrary_o pag._n 140._o n._n 26._o you_o say_v not_o fundamental_a ●_o e._n no_o essential_a point_n of_o christianity_n but_o contrary_a to_o this_o your_o doctrine_n in_o other_o place_n you_o teach_v that_o whatsoever_o be_v opposite_a to_o scripture_n be_v a_o heresy_n as_o pag_n 101._o n._n 127._o you_o say_v if_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o inform_v we_o what_o be_v the_o faith_n it_o must_v of_o necessity_n be_v also_o sufficient_a to_o teach_v we_o what_o be_v heresy_n see_v heresy_n be_v nothing_o but_o a_o manifest_a deviation_n from_o and_o opposition_n to_o the_o faith_n but_o you_o will_v not_o deny_v that_o every_o text_n of_o scripture_n be_v sufficient_a to_o make_v a_o thing_n a_o matter_n of_o faith_n therefore_o you_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o error_n against_o any_o such_o text_n be_v a_o deviation_n from_o and_o a_o opposition_n to_o faith_n must_v necessary_o be_v heresy_n which_o be_v more_o clear_a in_o your_o ground_n who_o teach_v that_o it_o be_v impossible_a to_o know_v what_o point_v in_o scripture_n be_v fundamental_a and_o consequent_o what_o be_v heresy_n if_o you_o take_v it_o for_o a_o deviation_n only_o from_o fundamental_a point_n and_o this_o you_o declare_v clear_o in_o the_o same_o number_n pag_n 102._o say_v if_o any_o man_n shall_v obstinate_o contradicnt_v the_o truth_n of_o any_o thing_n plain_o deliver_v in_o scripture_n who_o do_v not_o see_v that_o every_o one_o who_o believe_v the_o scripture_n have_v a_o sufficient_a mean_n to_o discover_v and_o condemn_v and_o avoid_v that_o heresy_n without_o any_o need_n of_o a_o infallible_a guide_n you_o teach_v also_o that_o as_o thing_n be_v order_v there_o be_v equal_a necessity_n of_o believe_v all_o thing_n contain_v in_o scripture_n whether_o they_o be_v fundamental_a or_o not_o fundamental_a and_o nothing_o be_v more_o frequent_a in_o your_o book_n than_o that_o it_o be_v a_o damnable_a sin_n to_o disbelieve_v any_o one_o truth_n sufficient_o propound_v to_o be_v reveal_v by_o god_n and_o what_o sin_n can_v it_o be_v but_o the_o sin_n of_o heresy_n which_o be_v opposite_a to_o the_o theological_a virtue_n of_o faith_n potter_n also_o speak_v clear_o to_o this_o purpose_n say_v pag_n 98._o he_o be_v just_o esteem_v a_o heretic_n who_o yeald_v not_o to_o scripture_n sufficient_o propound_v and_o yet_o it_o be_v clear_a that_o in_o scripture_n there_o be_v million_o of_o truth_n not_o fundamental_a and_o pag_n 128._o a_o obstinate_a stand_v out_o against_o evident_a scripture_n clear_v unto_o he_o make_v a_o heretic_n and_o pag_n 247._o if_o a_o man_n by_o read_v the_o scripture_n be_v convince_v of_o the_o truth_n this_o be_v a_o sufficient_a proposition_n to_o prove_v he_o th●t_o gainesay_v any_o such_o truth_n to_o be_v a_o heretic_n and_o obstinate_a opposer_n of_o the_o faith_n and_o pag_n 212._o it_o be_v true_a whatsoever_o be_v reveal_v in_o scripture_n or_o propound_v by_o the_o church_n out_o of_o scripture_n be_v in_o some_o sense_n fundamental_a in_o regard_n of_o the_o divine_a authority_n of_o god_n and_o his_o word_n by_o which_o it_o be_v recommend_v that_o be_v such_o as_o may_v not_o be_v deny_v or_o contradict_v without_o in_o fidelity_n such_o as_o every_o christian_a be_v bind_v with_o humility_n and_o reverence_n to_o believe_v whensoever_o the_o knowledge_n thereof_o be_v offer_v to_o he_o and_o further_a pag_n 250._o where_o the_o reveal_v will_n or_o word_n of_o god_n be_v sufficient_o propound_v there_o he_o that_o oppose_v be_v convince_v of_o error_n and_o he_o who_o be_v thus_o convince_v be_v a_o heretic_n and_o heresy_n be_v a_o work_n of_o the_o flesh_n which_o exclude_v from_o heaven_n gal_n 5.20.21_o and_o hence_o it_o follow_v that_o it_o be_v fundament_n all_o to_o a_o christian_n faith_n and_o necessary_a for_o his_o salvation_n that_o he_o believe_v all_o reveal_v truth_n of_o god_n whereof_o he_o may_v be_v convince_v that_o they_o be_v of_o god_n and_o pag_n 57_o whosoever_o either_o wilful_o oppose_v any_o catholic_n verity_n maintain_v by_o this_o church_n the_o fellowship_n of_o the_o saint_n or_o the_o catholic_n visible_a church_n as_o do_v heretic_n 〈◊〉_d perverse_o divide_v himself_o fromthe_v catholic_a communion_n as_o do_v schismatik_n the_o condition_n of_o both_o these_o be_v damnable_a and_o field_n l._n 2._o c._n 3_o speak_v plain_o freedom_n from_o fundamental_a error_n may_v be_v find_v among_o heretic_n therefore_o error_n against_o point_n not_o fundamenntall_a be_v heresy_n see_v they_o be_v may_v heretic_n and_o yet_o be_v free_a from_o fundamental_a error_n fulk_n in_o his_o rejoinder_n to_o bristol_n p._n 82._o the_o parliament_n determine_v heresy_n by_o contrariety_n to_o the_o canonical_a scripture_n can_v you_o expect_v a_o great_a authority_n then_o that_o of_o the_o parliament_n but_o no_o wonder_n if_o heresy_n be_v familiar_a and_o ripe_a among_o you_o if_o they_o consist_v only_o in_o fundamental_a error_n and_o that_o you_o be_v not_o able_a to_o determine_v what_o error_n be_v fundamental_a and_o they_o who_o will_v be_v careful_a to_o avoid_v they_o know_v not_o what_o for_o the_o rest_n of_o this_o number_n i_o need_v only_o say_v that_o it_o be_v unreasonable_a in_o you_o to_o desire_v a_o proof_n of_o that_o which_o here_o you_o express_o grant_v to_o be_v true_a and_o be_v clear_a of_o itself_o that_o either_o the_o protestant_n or_o roman_a church_n must_v err_v against_o the_o word_n and_o testimony_n of_o god_n see_v they_o hold_v contradictory_n in_o matter_n belong_v to_o faith_n and_o it_o be_v a_o fond_a thing_n in_o you_o to_o say_v that_z ch_z ma_n have_v for_o his_o reason_n their_o contradiction_n only_o see_v we_o always_o speak_v of_o contradiction_n in_o matter_n of_o faith_n your_o n._n 13._o contain_v no_o difficulty_n suppose_v we_o have_v already_o prove_v the_o infallibility_n of_o the_o church_n as_o we_o have_v do_v in_o divers_a place_n 10._o to_o your_o n._n 14._o i_o answer_v that_o if_o luther_n be_v a_o heretic_n who_o can_v deny_v but_o that_o they_o who_o follow_v and_o persist_v in_o the_o same_o doctrine_n must_v also_o be_v such_o see_v it_o be_v a_o foolery_n to_o think_v that_o all_o of_o they_o can_v be_v excuse_v by_o ignorance_n beside_o we_o speak_v per_fw-la se_fw-la loquendo_fw-la that_o the_o doctrine_n of_o itself_o be_v heretical_a the_o defender_n of_o it_o must_v also_o be_v heretic_n abstract_v from_o ignorance_n etc._n etc._n and_o so_o your_o distinction_n out_o of_o s._n austin_n of_o haeretici_fw-la and_o heraeticorum_fw-la sequace_n be_v not_o pertinent_a neither_o do_v charity_n maintain_v ever_o affirm_v that_o all_o be_v arian_n who_o follow_v their_o teacher_n be_v excuse_v from_o formal_a heresy_n by_o salvianus_n and_o i_o be_o sure_a ch_n ma_n himself_o be_v far_o from_o any_o such_o opinion_n yea_o even_o dr._n potter_n who_o pag_n 119._o allege_v the_o word_n of_o salvianus_n say_v he_o speak_v of_o some_o arian_n heretic_n from_o whence_o it_o do_v not_o follow_v that_o he_o speak_v of_o all_o those_o who_o follow_v their_o teacher_n and_o those_o of_o who_o he_o speak_v he_o
and_o now_o who_o can_v accuse_v we_o for_o want_v of_o charity_n towards_o protestant_n since_o you_o a_o choose_a champion_n for_o they_o be_v so_o uncharitable_a towards_o we_o yea_o towards_o many_o of_o the_o chief_a protestant_n who_o as_o i_o have_v often_o say_v agree_v with_o we_o against_o their_o other_o pretend_a brethren_n 12._o in_o your_o n._n 7._o there_o be_v no_o difficulty_n require_v answer_n yet_o i_o will_v not_o whole_o omit_v it_o i_o deny_v that_o your_o ignorance_n of_o be_v oblige_v to_o obey_v the_o roman_a church_n can_v be_v probable_a as_o i_o have_v prove_v heretofore_o and_o beside_o this_o you_o shall_v consider_v that_o see_v even_o according_a to_o your_o own_o confession_n the_o ministry_n of_o the_o church_n be_v a_o necessary_a condition_n to_o beget_v faith_n and_o that_o faith_n be_v ex_fw-la auditu_fw-la the_o precept_n of_o obey_v the_o church_n imply_v a_o command_n to_o obey_v that_o authority_n without_o which_o in_o the_o ordinary_a course_n we_o can_v attain_v that_o which_o be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o consequent_o the_o obligation_n we_o have_v to_o seek_v and_o obey_v the_o true_a church_n be_v not_o only_o because_o we_o be_v command_v to_o do_v so_o but_o we_o be_v command_v to_o do_v so_o because_o it_o import_v a_o matter_n necessary_a for_o our_o salvation_n 13._o you_o say_v to_o ch_z ma_n whereas_o you_o say_v that_o beside_o these_o thing_n necessary_a because_o command_v there_o be_v other_o thing_n which_o be_v command_v because_o necessary_a of_o which_o number_n you_o make_v divine_a infallible_a faith_n baptism_n in_o act_n for_o child_n and_o in_o desire_n for_o those_o who_o be_v come_v to_o the_o use_n of_o reason_n and_o the_o sacrament_n of_o confession_n for_o those_o who_o have_v commit_v mortal_a sin_n in_o these_o word_n you_o seem_v to_o i_o to_o deliver_v a_o strange_a pardox_n viz._n that_o faith_n and_o baptism_n and_o confession_n be_v not_o therefore_o necessary_a for_o we_o because_o god_n appoint_v they_o but_o be_v therefore_o appoint_v by_o god_n because_o they_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o antecedent_o to_o his_o appointment_n which_o if_o it_o be_v true_a i_o wonder_v what_o it_o be_v beside_o god_n that_o make_v they_o necessary_a and_o make_v it_o necessary_a for_o god_n to_o command_v they_o 14._o answer_n first_n although_o the_o word_n of_o ch_z ma_n have_v be_v the_o same_o which_o you_o set_v down_o yet_o your_o collection_n from_o they_o be_v so_o foolish_a and_o false_a that_o the_o reader_n can_v but_o take_v it_o ill_o that_o you_o shall_v imagine_v he_o to_o be_v so_o weak_a as_o not_o to_o perceive_v it_o suppose_v i_o say_v ch_z ma_n have_v say_v as_o you_o allege_v he_o that_o there_o be_v thing_n which_o be_v command_v because_o necessary_a do_v it_o follow_v that_o they_o be_v appoint_v as_o necessary_a by_o any_o but_o by_o god_n who_o command_v they_o by_o appoint_v they_o to_o be_v necessary_a do_v ch_n ma_n say_v as_o you_o will_v have_v he_o faith_n etc._n etc._n be_v not_o therefore_o necessary_a for_o we_o because_o god_n appoint_v they_o but_o be_v therefore_o appoint_v by_o god_n because_o they_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o antecedent_o to_o his_o appointment_n he_o say_v only_o even_o as_o you_o cite_v he_o that_o they_o be_v command_v because_o necessary_a not_o that_o they_o be_v necessary_a antecedent_o to_o his_o appointment_n as_o you_o falsify_v he_o turn_v command_v into_o appoint_v and_o make_v he_o say_v absurd_o other_o thing_n be_v appoint_v by_o god_n because_o they_o be_v necessary_a for_o we_o antecedent_o to_o his_o appointment_n but_o your_o malice_n will_v be_v yet_o more_o patent_n by_o set_v down_o the_o very_a word_n of_o ch_z ma_n which_o be_v these_o n._n 3._o some_o other_o thing_n be_v say_v to_o be_v necessary_a to_o salvation_n necessitate_v medij_fw-la because_o they_o be_v mean_v appoint_v by_o god_n mark_n appoint_v by_o god_n and_o how_o then_o can_v you_o say_v i_o wonder_v what_o it_o be_v beside_o god_n that_o make_v they_o necessary_a to_o attain_v our_o end_n of_o eternal_a salvation_n in_o so_o strict_a a_o manner_n that_o it_o be_v presumption_n to_o hope_v for_o salvation_n without_o they_o and_o as_o the_o former_a mean_n be_v say_v to_o be_v necessary_a because_o they_o be_v command_v so_o the_o latter_a be_v common_o say_v to_o be_v command_v because_o they_o be_v necessary_a that_o be_v although_o there_o be_v no_o other_o special_a precept_n mark_v special_a precept_n concern_v they_o yet_o suppose_v they_o be_v once_o appoint_v as_o mean_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n there_o can_v but_o rise_v a_o obligation_n of_o procure_v to_o have_v they_o in_o virtue_n of_o that_o universal_a precept_n of_o charity_n which_o oblige_v every_o man_n to_o procure_v the_o salvation_n of_o his_o own_o soul_n these_o word_n of_o ch_z ma_n be_v so_o clear_a and_o true_a that_o you_o may_v blush_v for_o have_v endeavour_v to_o put_v upon_o they_o any_o such_o absurd_a sense_n or_o paradox_n as_o we_o have_v hear_v you_o express_v the_o remainder_n of_o this_o number_n about_o the_o faith_n and_o baptism_n of_o infant_n be_v a_o argument_n not_o belong_v to_o this_o place_n or_o work_v and_o every_o one_o may_v find_v it_o treat_v learned_o and_o large_o by_o bellarmine_n and_o other_o catholic_a writer_n 15._o your_o n._n 8._o lay_v a_o heavy_a charge_n upon_o ch_z ma_n who_o you_o say_v deliver_v this_o false_a and_o wicked_a doctrine_n that_o for_o the_o procure_v our_o own_o salvation_n we_o be_v always_o bind_v under_o pain_n of_o mortal_a sin_n to_o take_v the_o safe_a way_n but_o for_o avoid_v sin_n we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o do_v so_o but_o may_v follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o any_o probable_a doctor_n though_o the_o contrary_n may_v be_v certain_o free_a from_o sin_n and_o they_o doubtful_a 16._o but_o you_o plain_o falsify_v the_o word_n and_o meaning_n of_o ch_z ma_n as_o appear_v by_o what_o i_o cite_v above_o out_o of_o his_o n._n 4._o for_o he_o never_o affirm_v that_o for_o the_o procure_v our_o own_o salvation_n we_o be_v always_o bind_v under_o pain_n of_o mortal_a sin_n to_o take_v the_o safe_a way_n which_o be_v evident_o false_a as_o i_o show_v above_o but_o that_o for_o avoid_v sin_n we_o be_v not_o bind_v to_o do_v so_o but_o may_v follow_v the_o opinion_n of_o any_o probable_a doctor_n though_o the_o contrary_n may_v be_v certain_o free_a from_o sin_n and_o they_o be_v doubtful_a whereas_o he_o speak_v not_o of_o a_o doubtful_a conscience_n which_o to_o follow_v be_v always_o a_o sin_n but_o of_o a_o true_o probable_a and_o prudent_a opinion_n which_o whosoever_o follow_v shall_v not_o only_o probable_o but_o certain_o avoid_v sin_n as_o it_o be_v not_o mere_o probable_a but_o certain_a that_o from_o probable_a premise_n a_o probable_a conclusion_n must_v follow_v and_o sin_n according_a to_o the_o doctrine_n of_o ch_z ma_n be_v always_o to_o be_v avoid_v though_o no_o man_n can_v deny_v but_o that_o to_o avoid_v sin_n more_o certainty_n must_v be_v have_v in_o some_o thing_n than_o in_o other_o according_a to_o the_o quality_n of_o they_o as_o for_o example_n one_o be_v oblige_v under_o sin_n to_o use_v great_a diligence_n for_o attain_v the_o knowledge_n of_o fundamental_a than_o unfundamentall_a point_n of_o faith_n and_o in_o general_n no_o man_n of_o discretion_n can_v deny_v that_o more_o certainty_n be_v to_o be_v seek_v in_o the_o choice_n of_o the_o true_a faith_n and_o religion_n then_o in_o a_o suit_n of_o law_n or_o deliberation_n whether_o some_o positive_a law_n oblige_v or_o no_o or_o other_o case_n disputable_a on_o both_o side_n and_o not_o touch_v upon_o any_o thing_n absolute_o and_o indispensable_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o so_o still_o it_o be_v true_a that_o we_o must_v avoid_v sin_n to_o the_o uttermost_a of_o our_o power_n and_o this_o if_o we_o speak_v of_o deadly_a sin_n be_v absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n you_o say_v religion_n be_v one_o of_o those_o thing_n which_o be_v necessary_a only_o because_o it_o be_v command_v for_o if_o none_o be_v command_v under_o pain_n of_o damnation_n how_o can_v it_o be_v damnable_a to_o be_v of_o any_o but_o by_o your_o leave_n in_o this_o you_o show_v great_a ignorance_n not_o distinguish_v between_o a_o command_n of_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v not_o appoint_v by_o god_n as_o a_o mean_n absolute_o necessary_a to_o salvation_n and_o of_o a_o thing_n which_o be_v appoint_v as_o simple_o necessary_a as_o u.g._n true_a faith_n religion_n repentance_n of_o sin_n &c_n &c_n as_o in_o proportion_n you_o say_v that_o some_o thing_n be_v necessary_a to_o be_v believe_v because_o they_o be_v reveal_v and_o other_o reveal_v because_o they_o be_v necessary_a and_o if_o one_o shall_v object_v